Buddhism is nothing but the NOBLE TRUTH.
What
is Buddhism? This question has puzzled many people who often inquire if Buddhism
is a philosophy, a religion, or a way of life. The simple answer is that Buddhism
is too vast and too profound to be neatly placed in any single category. Of course,
Buddhism includes philosophy and religion and a way of life. But Buddhism goes
beyond these categories.
The categories or labels given to Buddhism are like
signboards to let the people know what is being presented. If we compare Buddhism
to a medicine shop, it will be clear that the signboard on the medicine shop will
not cure a person of his sickness. If the medicine is effective, then you can
use it to heal yourself without being concerned as to the signboard that merely
gives a label for the medicine. Likewise, if the Teaching of the Buddha is effective,
then use it and do not be concerned about the label or signboard. Do not try to
slip Buddhism into any single category or limit it under any signboard.
Different
people live at different times and in different places have given different labels
and interpretations to Buddhism. To some people, Buddhism might appear to be only
a mass of superstitious practices. To another group of people, Buddhism might
be a convenient label to be used for temporal gains. To another group, it is old
fashioned. To yet another group, Buddhism will have significance as a system of
thought for intellectuals only. To some others, it is a scientific discovery.
To the pious and devout Buddhist, Buddhism means his entire life, the fulfillment
of all he holds near and dear to him.
Some intellectuals see Buddhism as a
product of its Indian environment or as an outgrowth of another kind of Indian
religious teaching. Buddhism is nothing but the Noble Truth. It is an intellectual
approach to reality. The Buddha's realization of universal problems did not come
through a purely intellectual or rational process but through mental development
and purification. The intellectual stance reminiscent of the scientific attitude,
surely makes the Buddha absolutely unique among religious teachers of all time.
Of course, the high standard of intellectual inquiry and ethical endeavor prevailing
at the time in India were prime conditions for the re-emergence of the light of
the Dhamma from the darkness of oblivion. Thousands of years of religious and
philosophical development had left on the intellectual soil of India a rich and
fertile deposit of ideas and ideals which formed the best possible environment
into which the seed of the Dhamma could fall. Greece, China, Egypt and Babylonia,
for all their loftiness of thought, had not attained the same quality of vision
as the forest and mountain-dwelling sages of India. The germ of Enlightenment
which had been borne, like a winged seed from distant fields, from worlds in space
and time infinitely remote from ours _ this very germ of Enlightenment found growth
and development in the north-eastern corner of India. This very germ of Enlightenment
found its full expression in the experience of the man, Gautama Buddha. The fountainhead
of all Buddhism is this experience which is called 'Enlightenment'. With this
experience of Enlightenment, the Buddha began His Teaching not with any dogmatic
beliefs or mysteries, but with a valid, universal experience, which He gave to
the world as universal truth. Therefore, the real definition of Buddhism is NOBLE
TRUTH. Remember that the Buddha did not teach from theories. He always taught
from a practical standpoint based on His understanding, His Enlightenment, and
His realization of the Truth.
Buddhism began with the Truth embodied over
2500 years ago in the person of Gautama, the Buddha. When the Buddha introduced
His teachings, His intention was not to develop the concept of self in man's mind
and create more ambition for eternal life and sense pleasure. Rather, His intention
was to point out the futility of the worldly life and to show the correct, practical
Path to salvation that He discovered.
The original Teachings of the Buddha
disclosed the true nature of life and the world. However, a distinction must be
made between the Buddha's original Teaching (often called the Dhamma or the Buddha
Word) and the religion that developed based on His Teachings.
The Teachings
of the Buddha not only started a religion, but inspired the blossoming of a whole
civilization. These Teachings became a great civilizing force that moved through
the history of many a culture and nation. Indeed, Buddhism has become one of the
greatest civilizations that the world has ever known. It has a wonderful history
of achievement in the fields of literature, art, philosophy, psychology, ethics,
architecture and culture. In the course of centuries, countless social educational
institutions were established in the various nations that were dedicated to the
Buddha's Teaching. The history of Buddhism was written in golden letters of brotherhood
and goodwill. The religious beliefs and practices turned into a rational, scientific
and practical religious way of life for spiritual development from the day the
Buddha preached His Teaching and realized the real purpose and meaning of a life
and a religion.
The Ultimate Truth
The
Ultimate Truth can be found in the Teaching of the Buddhism.
Buddhism recognizes
two kinds of Truth. The apparent conventional truth and the real or ultimate Truth.
The ultimate Truth can be realized only through meditation, and not theorizing
or speculating.
The Buddha's Teaching is the Ultimate Truth of the world.
Buddhism, however, is not a revealed or an organized religion. It is the first
example of the purely scientific approach applied to questions concerning the
ultimate nature of existence. This timeless Teaching was discovered by the Buddha
Himself without the help of any divine agency. This same teaching is strong enough
to face any challenge without changing the basic principles of the doctrine. Any
religion that is forced to change or adjust its original Teachings to suit the
modern world, is a religion that has no firm foundation and no ultimate truth
in it. Buddhism can maintain the Truth of the original Teaching of the Master
even under the difficult conditions prevailing in the modern world. The Buddha
did not introduce certain personal or worldly practices which have no connection
with morality or religious observances. To the Buddha, such practices have no
religious value. We must make the distinction between what the Buddha taught and
what people preach and practise in the name of Buddhism.
Every religion consists
of not only the teachings of the founder of that religion but also the rites and
ceremonies which have grown up around the basic core of the teachings. These rituals
and ceremonies have their origins in the cultural practices of the people who
accepted the religion. Usually the founders of the great religions do not lay
down precise rules about the rituals to be observed. But religious leaders who
come after them formalize the religion and set up exacting codes of behavior which
the followers are not allowed to deviated from.
Even the religion which we
call 'Buddhism' is very different in its external practices from what the Buddha
and His early followers carried out. Centuries of cultural and environmental influence
have made Burmese, Thai, Chinese, Tibetan, Sri Lankan and Japanese Buddhism different.
But these practices are not in conflict, because the Buddha taught that while
the Truth remains absolute, the physical manifestation of this truth can differ
according to the way of life of those who profess it.
A few hundred years
after His passing away, the disciples of the Buddha organized a religion around
the Teachings of the Master. While organizing the religion, they incorporated,
among other concepts and beliefs, various types of miracles, mysticism, fortune-telling,
charms, talismans, mantras, prayers and many rites and rituals that were not found
in the original Teaching. When these extraneous religious beliefs and practices
were introduced, many people neglected to develop the most important practices
found in the original Teaching; self-discipline, self-restraint, cultivation of
morality and spiritual development. Instead of practicing the original Teaching,
they gave more of their attention and effort to self-protection from evil spirits
and sought after prosperity or good luck. Gradually, people began to lose interest
in the original Teachings and became more interested in discovering ways and means
of getting rid of the so-called misfortunes or bad influences of stars, black
magic, and sickness. In this manner, through time the religious practices and
beliefs degenerated, being confined to worldly pursuits. Even today, many people
believe that they can get rid of their difficulties through the influence of external
powers. People still cling to this belief: hence they neglect to cultivate the
strength of their will-power, intelligence, understanding and other related human
qualities. In other words, people started to abuse their human intelligence by
following those beliefs and practices in the name of Buddhism. They also polluted
the purity of the Buddha's message.
Thus the modern religion we see in many
countries is the product of normal human beings living in a country and adjusting
to various social and cultural environments. However, Buddhism as a religion did
not begin as a superworldly system that came down from heaven. Rather it was born
and evolved through a long historical process. In its process of evolution, many
people slowly moved away from the original Teachings of the founder and started
different new schools or sects. All the other existing religions also face the
same situation.
One should not come to a hasty conclusion either by judging
the validity of a religion or by condemning the religion simply by observing what
people perform through their blind faith in the name of that religion. To understand
the real nature of a religion one must study and investigate the original Teachings
of the founder of that religion.
In the face of the profusion of ideas and
practices which were later developments, it is useful for us to return to the
positive and timeless Dhamma taught by the Buddha. Whatever people believe and
practise in the name of Buddhism the basic Teachings of the Buddha still exist
in the original Buddhist texts.
Two Main Schools of Buddhism
The real
followers of the Buddha can practise this religion without adhering to any school
or sect.
A few hundred years after the Buddha's passing away, there arose
eighteen different schools or sects all of which claimed to represent the original
Teachings of the Buddha. The differences between these schools were basically
due to various interpretations of the Teachings of the Buddha. Over a period of
time, these schools gradually merged into two main schools: Theravada and Mahayana.
Today, a majority of the followers of Buddhism are divided into these two schools.
Basically Mahayana Buddhism grew out of the Buddha's teaching that each individual
carries within himself the potential for Buddhahood. Theravadins say that this
potential can be realized through individual effort. Mahayanists, on the other
hand, believe that they can seek salvation through the intervention of other superior
beings called Bodhisattas. According to them, Bodhisattas are future Buddhas who,
out of compassion for their fellow human beings, have delayed their own attainment
of Buddhahood until they have helped others towards liberation. In spite of this
basic difference, however, it must be stressed that doctrinally there is absolutely
no disagreement concerning the Dhamma as contained in the sacred Tripitaka texts.
Because Buddhists have been encouraged by the Master to carefully inquire after
the truth, they have been free to interpret the scriptures according to their
understanding. But above all, both Mahayana and Theravada are one in their reverence
for the Buddha.(For a short, excellent exposition on this topic, read Dr. W. Rahula,
'Theravada and Mahayana Buddhism' published by The Buddhist Missionary Society.)
The areas of agreement between the two schools are as follows:
Both accept
Sakyamuni Buddha as the Teacher.
The Four Noble Truths are exactly the same
in both schools.
The Eightfold Path is exactly the same in both schools.
The
Pattica-Samuppada or teaching on Dependent Origination is the same in both schools.
Both
reject the idea of a supreme being who created and governed this world.
Both
accept Anicca, Dukkha, Anatta and Sila, Samadhi, Panna without any difference.
Some
people are of the view that Theravada is selfish because it teaches that people
should seek their own salvation. But how can a selfish person gain Enlightenment?
Both schools accept the three Yana or Bodhi and consider the Bodhisatta Ideal
as the highest. The Mahayana has created many mystical Bodhisattas, while the
Theravada believes that a Bodhisatta is a man amongst us who devotes his entire
life for the attainment of perfection, and ultimately becomes a fully Enlightened
Buddha for the well-being and happiness of the world.
The terms Hinayana (Small
Vehicle) and Mahayana(Great Vehicle)are not known in the Theravada Pali literature.
They are not found in the Pali Canon (Tripitaka)
or in the Commentaries on
the Tripitaka.
Theravada Buddhists follow orthodox religious traditions that
had prevailed in India two thousand five hundred years ago. They perform their
religious services in the Pali language. They also expect to attain the final
goal (Nibbana) by becoming a Supreme Enlightened Buddha, Pacceka Buddha, or an
Arahant (the highest stage of sainthood). The Majority of them prefer the Arahantahood.
Buddhists in Sri Lanka, Burma, and Thailand belong to this school. Mahayanists
have changed the old religious customs. Their practices are in accordance with
the customs and traditions of the countries where they live. Mahayanists perform
their religious services in their mother tongue. They expect to attain the final
goal (Nibbana) by becoming Buddhas. Hence, they honor both the Buddha and Bodhisatta
(one who is destined to be a Buddha with the same respect. Buddhists in China,
Japan and Korea belong to this school. Most of those in Tibet and Mongolia follow
another school of Buddhism which is known as Vajrayana. Buddhist scholars believe
that this school inclines more towards the Mahayana sect.
It is universally
accepted by scholars that the terms Hinayana and Mahayana are later invention.
Historically speaking, the Theravada already existed long before these terms came
into being. That Theravada, considered to be the original teaching of the Buddha,
was introduced to Sri Lanka and established there in the 3rd century B.C., during
the time of Emperor Asoka of India. At that time there was nothing called Mahayana.
Mahayana as such appeared much later, about the beginning of the Christian
era. Buddhism that went to Sri Lanka, with its Tripitaka and Commentaries, in
the 3rd Century B.C., remained there intact as Theravada, and did not come into
the scene of the Hinayana-Mahayana dispute that developed later in India. It seems
therefore not legitimate to include Theravada in either of these two categories.
However, after the inauguration of the World Fellowship of Buddhists in 1950,
well-informed people, both in the East and in the West, use the term Theravada,
and not the term Hinayana, with reference to Buddhism prevalent in South-east
Asian countries. There are still outmoded people who use the term Hinayana. In
fact, the Samdhi Nirmorcana Sutra (a Mahayana Sutra) clearly says that the Sravakayana?
Theravadaand the Mahayana constitute one Yana (ekayana) and that they are not
two different and distinct 'vehicles'. Although different schools of Buddhism
held different opinions on the teaching of the Buddha, they never had any violence
or blood shed for more than two thousands years. This is the uniqueness of Buddhist
tolerance.
Chapter 5 Basic Doctrines
Tri-Pitaka (or Tipitaka)
Tripitaka is the collection of the teachings of
the Buddha over 45 years in the Pali language, and it consists of Sutta---conventionalteaching,
Vinaya ---disciplinary code, and Abhidhamma---moral psychology.
The Tripitaka
was compiled and arranged in its present form by those Arahants who had immediate
contact with the Master Himself.
The Buddha has passed away, but the sublime
Dhamma which He unreservedly bequeathed to humanity still exists in its pristine
purity.
Although the Master has left no written records of His Teachings,
His distinguished disciples preserved them by committing to memory and transmitting
them orally from generation to generation.
Immediately after the final passing
away of the Buddha, 500 distinguished Arahants held a convention known as the
First Buddhist Council to rehearse the Doctrine taught by the Buddha. Venerable
Ananda, the faithful attendant of the Buddha who had the special privilege of
hearing all the discourses the Buddha ever uttered, recited the Dhamma, whilst
the Venerable Upali recited the Vinaya, the rules of conduct for the Sangha.
One
hundred years after the First Buddhist Council, during King Kalasoka, some disciples
saw the need to change certain minor rules. The orthodox monk said that nothing
should be changed while the others insisted on modifying some disciplinary rules(Vinaya).
Finally, the formation of different schools of Buddhism germinated after this
council. And in the Second Council, only matters pertaining to the Vinaya were
discussed and no controversy about the Dhamma was reported.
In the 3rd Century
B.C. during the time of Emperor Asoka, the Third Council was held to discuss the
differences of opinion held by the Sangha community. At this Council the differences
were not confined to the Vinaya but were also connected with the Dhamma. At the
end of this Council, the President of the Council, Ven. Moggaliputta Tissa, compiled
a book called Kathavatthu refuting the heretical, false views and theories held
by some disciples. The teaching approved and accepted by this Council was known
as Theravada. The Abhidhamma Pitaka was held in Sri Lanka in 80 B.C. is known
as the 4th Council under the patronage of the pious King Vattagamini Abbaya. It
was at this time in Sri Lanka that the Tripitaka was first committed to writing.
The Tripitaka consists of three sections of the Buddha's Teachings. They are
the Discipline(Vinaya Pitaka), the Discourse(Sutta Pitaka), and Ultimate Doctrine
(Abhidhamma Pitaka).
The Vinaya Pitaka mainly deals with the rules and regulations
of the Order of monks (Bhikkhus) and nuns (Bhikkhunis). It describes in detail
the gradual development of the Sasana(Dispensation). It also gives an account
of the life and ministry of the Buddha. Indirectly it reveals some useful information
about ancient history, Indian customs, arts, sciences, etc.
For nearly twenty
years since His Enlightenment, the Buddha did not lay down rules for the control
of the Sangha. Later, as the occasion arose, the Buddha promulgated rules for
the future discipline of the Sangha.
This Pitaka consists of the five following
books:---
Parajika Pali (Major Offences)
Pacittiya Pali (Minor Offences)
Mahavagga
Pali (Greater Section)
Cullavagga Pali (Smaller Section)
Parivara Pali (Epitome
of the Vinaya)
Sutta Pitaka
The
Sutta Pitaka consists chiefly of discourses delivered by the Buddha Himself on
various occasions. There are also a few discourses delivered by some of His distinguished
disciples, such as the Venerable Sariputta, Ananda, Moggallana, etc., included
in it. It is like a book of prescriptions, as the sermons embodied therein were
expounded to suit the different occasions and the temperaments of various persons.
There may be seemingly contradictory statements, but they should not be misconstrued
as they were opportunely uttered by the Buddha to suit a particular purpose.
This
Pitaka is divided into five Nikayas or collections, viz:--
Digha Nikaya (Collection
of Long Discourses)
Majjhima Nikaya (Collection of Middle-length Discourses)
Samyutta
Nikaya (Collection of Kindred Sayings)
Anguttara Nikaya (Collection of Discourses
arranged in accordance with number)
Khuddaka Nikaya(Smaller Collection)
The
fifth is subdivided into fifteen books:---
Khuddaka Patha (Shorter Texts)
Dhammapada
(The Way of Truth)
Udana (Heartfelt sayings or Paeons of Joy)
Iti Vuttaka
('Thus said" Discourses)
Sutta Nipata (Collected Discourses)
Vimana
Vatthu (Stories of Celestial Mansions)
Peta Vatthu (Stories of Petas)
Theragatha
(Psalms of the Brethren)
Therigatha (Psalms of the Sisters)
Jataka (Birth
Stories)
Niddesa (Expositions)
Patisambhida (Analytical Knowledge)
Apadana
(Lives of Saints)
Buddhavamsa (The History of Buddha)
Cariya Pitaka (Modes
of Conduct)
Abhidhamma Pitaka
The
Abhidhamma is, to a deep thinker, the most important and interesting, as it contains
the profound philosophy of the Buddha's teaching in contrast to the illuminating
but simpler discourses in the Sutta Pitaka.
In the Sutta Pitaka one often
finds references to individual, being, etc., but in the Abhidhamma, instead of
such conventional terms, we meet with ultimate terms, such as aggregates, mind,
matter, etc.
In the Sutta is found the Vohara Desana (Conventional Teaching),
whilst in the Abhidhamma is found the Paramattha Desana (Ultimate Doctrine).
In
the Abhidhamma everything is analysed and explained in detail, and as such it
is called analytical doctrine (Vibhajja Vada).
Four ultimate things (Paramattha)
are enumerated in the Abhidhamma. They are Citta, (Consciousness), Cetasika (Mental
concomitants), Rupa (Matter) and Nibbana.
The so-called being is microscopically
analysed and its component parts are minutely described. Finally the ultimate
goal and the method to achieve it is explained with all necessary details.
The
Abhidhamma Pitaka is composed of the following works:--
Dhamma-Sangani (Enumeration
of Phenomena)
Vibhanga (The Book of the Treatises)
Katha Vatthu (Point of
Controversy)
Puggala Pannatti (Description of Individuals)
Dhatu Katha (Discussion
with reference to Elements)
Yamaka (The Book of Pairs)
Patthana (The Book
of Relations)
According to another classification, mentioned by the Buddha
Himself, the whole Teachings is ninefold, namely ---1. Sutta, 2. Geyya, 3. Veyyakarama,
4. Gatha, 5. Udana, 6. Itivuttaka, 7. Jataka, 8. Abbhutadhamma, 9. Vedalla.
Sutta?These
are the short, medium, and long discourses expounded by the Buddha on various
occasions, such as Mangala Sutta (Discourse on Blessings), Ratana Sutta (The Jewel
Discourse) Metta Sutta(Discourse on Goodwill), etc. According to the Commentary
the whole Vinaya Pitaka is also included in this division.
Geyya _These are
discourses mixed with Gathas or verses, such as the Sagathavagga of the Samyutta
Nikaya.
Veyyakarana --- Lit. exposition. The whole Abhidhamma Pitaka, discourses
without verses, and everything that is not included in the remaining eight divisions
belong to this class.
Gatha --- These include verses found in the Dhammapada
(Way of Truth), Theragatha (Psalms of the Brethren). Therigatha (Psalms of the
Sisters), and those isolated verses which are not classed amongst the Sutta.
Udana
_These are the 'Paeons of Joy' found in the Udana, one of the divisions of the
Khuddaka Nikaya.
Itivuttaka _ These are the 112 discourses which commence with
the phrases _ 'Thus the Blessed One has Said'. Itivuttaka is one of the fifteen
books that comprise the Khuddaka Nikaya.
Jataka _ These are the 547 birth-stories
related by the Buddha in connection with His previous births.
Abbhutadhamma
_ These are the few discourses that deal with wonderful and marvelous things,
as for example the Accariya-Abbhutadhamma Sutta of the Majjhima Nikaya (No. 123).
Vedalla
_ These are the pleasurable discourses, such as Chulla Vedalla, Maha Vedalla (M.N.
Nos 43,44), Samma Ditthi Sutta (M.N.No.9), etc. In some of these discourses, the
answers give to certain questions were put with a feeling of joy.
What
is Abhidhamma?
Abhidhamma is the analytical doctrine of mental faculties and
elements.
The Abhidhamma Pitaka contains the profound moral psychology and
philosophy of the Buddha's teaching, in contrast to the simpler discourses in
the Sutta Pitaka.
The knowledge gained from the sutta can certainly help us
in overcoming our difficulties, as well as in developing our moral conduct and
training the mind. Having such knowledge will enable one to lead a life which
is peaceful, respectable, harmless and noble. By listening to the discourses,
we develop understanding of the Dhamma and can mould our daily lives accordingly.
The concepts behind certain words and terms used in the Sutta Pitaka are, however,
subject to changes and should be interpreted within the context of the social
environment prevailing at the Buddha's time. The concepts used in the sutta are
like the conventional words and terms lay people use to express scientific subjects.
While concepts in the sutta are to be understood in the conventional sense, those
used in the Abhidhamma must be understood in the ultimate sense. The concepts
expressed in the Abhidhamma are like the precise scientific words and terms used
by scientists to prevent misinterpretations.
It is only in the Abhidhamma that
explanations are given on how and at which mental beats a person can create good
and bad karmic thoughts, according to his desires and other mental states. Clear
explanations of the nature of the different mental faculties and precise analytical
interpretations of the elements can be found in this important collection of discourses.
Understanding
the Dhamma through the knowledge gained from the sutta is like the knowledge acquired
from studying the prescripti0ons for different types of sicknesses. Such knowledge
when applied can certainly help to cure certain types of sicknesses. On the other
hand, a qualified physician, with his precise knowledge, can diagnose a wider
range of sicknesses and discover their causes. This specialized knowledge puts
him in a better position to prescribe more effective remedies. Similarly, a person
who has studied the Abhidhamma can better understand the nature of the mind and
analyse the mental attitudes which cause a human being to commit mistakes and
develop the will to avoid evil.
The Abhidhamma teaches that the egoistic beliefs
and other concepts such as 'I', "you", 'man' and 'the world', which
we use in daily conversation, do not adequately describe the real nature of existence.
The conventional concepts do not reflect the fleeting nature of pleasures, uncertainties,
impermanence of every component thing, and the conflict among the elements and
energies intrinsic in all animate or inanimate things. The Abhidhamma doctrine
gives a clear exposition of the ultimate nature of man and brings the analysis
of the human condition further than other studies known to man.
The Abhidhamma
deals with realities existing in the ultimate sense, or paramattha dhamma in Pali.
There are four such realities:
Citta, mind or consciousness, defined as 'that
which knows or experiences' an object. Citta occurs as distinct momentary states
of consciousness.
Cetasika, the mental factors that arise and occur along with
the citta.
Rupa, physical phenomenon or material form.
Nibbana, the unconditioned
state of bliss which is the final goal.
Citta, the cetasika, and rupa are conditioned
realities. They arise because of conditions sustaining them cease to continue
to do so. They are impermanent states. Nibbana, on the other hand, is an unconditioned
reality. It does not arise and, therefore, does not fall away. These four realities
can be experienced regardless of the names we may choose to give them. Other than
these realities, everything _ be it within ourselves or without, whether in the
past, present or future, whether coarse or subtle, low or lofty, far or near _
is a concept and not an ultimate reality.
Citta, cetisaka(?), and Nibbana
are also called nama. Nibbana is an unconditioned nama. The two conditioned nama,
that is, cita and cetasika, together with rupa (form), make up psychophysical
organisms, including human beings. Both mind and matter, or nama-rupa, are analysed
in Abhidhamma as though under a microscope. Events connected with the process
of birth and death are explained in detail. The Abhidhamma clarifies intricate
points of the Dhamma and enables the arising of an understanding of reality, thereby
setting forth in clear terms the Path of Emancipation. The realization we gain
from the Abhidhamma with regard to our lives and the world is not in a conventional
sense, but absolute reality.
The clear exposition of thought processes in
Abhidhamma cannot be found in any other psychological treatise either in the east
or west. Consciousness is defined, while thoughts are analysed and classified
mainly from an ethical standpoint. The composition of each type of consciousness
is set forth in detail. The fact that consciousness flows like a steam, a view
propounded by psychologists like William James, becomes extremely clear to one
who understands the Abhidhamma. In addition, a student of Abhidhamma can fully
comprehend the Anatta (No-soul) doctrine, which is important both from a philosophical
and ethical standpoint.
The Abhidhamma explains the process of rebirth in
various planes after the occurrence of death without anything to pass from one
life to another. This explanation provides support to the doctrine of Kamma and
Rebirth. It also gives a wealth of details about the mind, as well as the units
of mental and material forces, properties of matter, sources of matter, relationship
of mind and matter.
In the Abhidhamattha Sangaha, a manual of Abhidhamma,
there is a brief exposition of the 'Law of Dependent Origination", followed
by a descriptive account of the Causal Relations which finds no parallel in any
other study of the human condition anywhere else in the world. Because of its
analytics and profound expositions, the Abhidhamma is not a subject of fleeting
interest designed for the superficial reader.
To what extent can we compare
modern psychology with the analysis provided in the Abhidhamma? Modern psychology,
limited as it is, comes within the scope of Abhidhamma in so far as it deals with
the mind---with thoughts, thought processes, and mental states. The difference
lies in the fact that Abhidhamma does not accept the concept of a psyche or a
soul.
The analysis of the nature of the mind given in the Abhidhamma is not
available through any other source.. Even modern psychologists are very much in
the dark with regards to subjects like mental impulses or mental beats (Javana
Citta) as discussed in the Abhidhamma. Dr. Graham Howe, an eminent Harley Street
psychologist, wrote in his book, the Invisible Anatomy:
'In the course of
their work many psychologists have found, as the pioneer work of C.G. Jung has
shown, that we are near to [the] Buddha. To read a little Buddhism is to realize
that the Buddhists knew two thousand five hundred years ago far more about our
modern problems of psychology than they have yet been given credit for. They studied
these problems long ago, and found the answers too. We are now rediscovering the
Ancient Wisdom of the East.'
Some scholars assert that the Abhidhamma is not
the teaching of the Buddha, but it grew out of the commentaries on the basic teachings
of the Buddha. These commentaries are said to be the work of great scholar monks.
Tradition, however, attributes the nucleus of the Abhidhamma to the Buddha Himself.
Commentators state that the Buddha, as a mark of gratitude to His mother who
was born as a deva in a celestial plane, preached the Abhidhamma to His mother
together with other devas continuously for three months. The principal topics
(matika) of the advanced teaching, such as moral states (kusala dhamma) and immoral
states (akusala dhamma), were then repeated by the Buddha to Venerable Sariputta
Thera, who subsequently elaborated them and later compiled them into six books.
From ancient times there were controversies as to whether the Abhidhamma was
really taught by the Buddha. While this discussion may be interesting for academic
purposes, what is important is for us to experience and understand the realities
described in the Abhidhamma. One will realize for oneself that such profound and
consistently verifiable truths can only emanate from a supremely enlightened source
_ from a Buddha. Much of what is contained in the Abhidhamma is also found in
the Sutta Pitaka. Such a statement, of course, cannot be supported by evidence.
According to the Theravada tradition, the essence, fundamentals and framework
of the Abhidhamma are ascribed to the Buddha, although the tabulations and classifications
may have been the work of later disciples. What is important is the essence. It
is this that we would try to experience for ourselves. The Buddha Himself clearly
took this stand of using the knowledge of the Abhidhamma to clarify many existing
psychological, metaphysical and philosophical problems. Mere intellectual quibbling
about whether the Buddha taught the Abhidhamma or not will not help us to understand
reality.
The question is also raised whether the Abhidhamma is essential for
Dhamma practice. The answer to this will depend on the individual who undertakes
the practice. People vary in their levels of understanding, their temperaments
and spiritual development. Ideally, all the different spiritual faculties should
be harmonized, but some people are quite contented with devotional practices based
on faith, while others are keen on developing penetrative insight. The Abhidhamma
is most useful to those who want to understand the Dhamma in greater depth and
detail. It aids the development of insight into the three characteristics of existence?impermanence,
unsatisfactoriness, and non-self. It is useful not only for the periods devoted
to formal meditation, but also during the rest of the day when we are engaged
in various mundane chores. We derive great benefit from the study of the Abhidhamma
when we experience absolute reality. In addition, a comprehensive knowledge of
the Abhidhamma is useful for those engaged in teaching and explaining the Dhamma.
In fact the real meaning of the most important Buddhist terminologies such as
Dhamma, Kamma, Samsara, Sankhara, Paticca Samuppada and Nibbana cannot be understood
without a knowledge of Abhidhamma.
Mind and Matter(Nama-Rupa)
"What
is mind? No matter. What is matter? Never mind."
According to Buddhism,
life is a combination of mind (nama) and matter (rupa). Mind consists of the combination
of sensations, perceptions, volitional activities and consciousness. Matter consists
of the combination of the four elements of solidity, fluidity, motion and heat.
Life
is the co-existence of mind and matter. Decay is the lack of co-ordination of
mind and matter. Death is the separation of mind and matter. Rebirth is the recombination
of mind and matter. After the passing away of the physical body (matter), the
mental forces (mind) recombine and assume a new combination in a different material
form and condition another existence.
The relation of mind to matter is like
the relation of a battery to an engine of a motor car. The battery helps to start
the engine. The engine helps to charge the battery. The combination helps to run
the motor car. In the same manner, matter helps the mind to function and the mind
helps to set matter in motion.
Buddhism teaches that life is not the property
of matter alone, and that the life-process continues or flows as a result of cause
and effect. The mental and material elements that compose sentient beings from
amoebae to elephant and also to man, existed previously in other forms.
Although
some people hold the view that life originates in matter alone, the greatest scientists
have accepted that mind precedes matter in order for life to originate. In Buddhism,
this concept is called 'relinking consciousness'.
Each of us, in the ultimate
sense, is mind and matter, a compound of mental and material phenomena, and nothing
more. Apart from these realities that go to form the nama-rupa compound, there
is no self, or soul. The mind part of the compound is what experiences an object.
The matter part does not experience anything. When the body is injured, it is
not the body that feels the pain, but the mental side. When are hungry it is not
the stomach that feels the hunger but again the mind and its factors, makes the
body digest the food. Thus neither the nama nor the rupa has any efficient power
of its own. One is dependent on the other; one supports the other. Both mind and
matter arise because of conditions and perish immediately, and this is happening
every moment of our lives. By studying and experiencing these realities we will
get insight into: (1)what we truly are; (2)what we find around us; (3)how and
why we react to what is within and around us; and (4)what we should aspire to
reach as a spiritual goal.
To gain insight into the nature of the psycho-physical
life is to realize that life is an illusion, a mirage or a bubble, a mere process
of becoming and dissolving, or arising and passing away. Whatever exists, arises
from causes and conditions.
Four
Noble Truths
Why are we here? Why are we not happy with our lives? What is
the cause of our unsatisfactoriness? How can we see the end of unsatisfactoriness
and experience eternal peace?
The Buddha's Teaching is based on the Four Noble
Truths. To realize these Truths is to realize and penetrate into the true nature
of existence, including the full knowledge of oneself. When we recognize that
all phenomenal things are transitory, are subject to suffering and are void of
any essential reality, we will be convinced that true and enduring happiness cannot
be found in material possessions and worldly achievement, that true happiness
must be sought only through mental purity and the cultivation of wisdom.
The
Four Noble Truths are a very important aspect of the teaching of the Buddha. The
Buddha has said that it is because we fail to understand the Four Noble Truths
that we have continued to go round in the cycle of birth and death. In the very
first sermons of the Buddha, the Dhammachakka Sutta, which He gave to the five
monks at the Deer park in Sarnath was on the Four Noble Truths and the Eightfold
Path. What are the Four Noble Truths? They are as follows:
The Noble Truth
of Dukkha
The Noble Truth of the Cause of Dukkha
The Noble Truth of the
End of Dukkha
The Noble Truth of the path leading to the End of Dukkha
There
are many ways of understanding the Pali word 'Dukkha'. It has generally been translated
as 'suffering' or 'unsatisfactoriness', but this term as used in the Four Noble
Truths has a deeper and wider meaning. Dukkha contains not only the ordinary meaning
of suffering, but also includes deeper ideas such as imperfection, pain, impermanence,
disharmony, discomfort, irritation, or awareness of incompleteness and insufficiency.
By all means, Dukkha includes physical and mental suffering: birth, decay, disease,
death, to be united with the unpleasant, to be separated from the pleasant, not
to get what one desires. However, many people do not realize that even during
the moments of joy and happiness, there is Dukkha because these moments are all
impermanent states and will pass away when conditions change. Therefore, the truth
of Dukkha encompasses the whole of existence, in our happiness and sorrow, in
every aspect of our lives. As long as we live, we are very profoundly subjected
to this truth.
Some people may have the impression that viewing life in terms
of Dukkha is a rather pessimistic way of looking at life. This is not a pessimistic
but a realistic way of looking at life. If one is suffering from a disease and
refuses to recognize the fact that one is ill, and as a result of which refuses
to seek for treatment, we will not consider such a mental attitude as being optimistic,
but merely as being foolish. Therefore, by being both optimistic or pessimistic,
one does not really understand the nature of life, and is therefore unable to
tackle life's problems in the right perspective. The Four Noble Truths begin with
the recognition of Dukkha and then proceed to analyse its cause and find its cure.
Had the Buddha stopped at the Truth of Dukkha, then one may say Buddhism has identified
the problem but has not given the cure; if such is the case, then the human situation
is hopeless. However, not only is the Truth of Dukkha recognized, the Buddha proceeded
to analyze its cause and the way to cure it. How can Buddhism be considered to
be pessimistic if the cure to the problem is known? In fact, it is a teaching
which is filled with hope.
In addition, even though Dukkha is a noble truth,
it does not mean that there is no happiness, enjoyment and pleasure in life. There
is, and the Buddha has taught various methods with which we can gain more happiness
in our daily life. However, in the final analysis, the fact remains that the pleasure
or happiness which we experience in life is impermanent. We may enjoy a happy
situation, or the good company of someone we love, or we enjoy youth and health.
Sooner or later, when these states change we experience suffering. Therefore,
while there is every reason to feel glad when one experiences happiness, one should
not cling to these happy states or be side-tracked and forget about working one's
way to complete Liberation.
If we wish to cure ourselves from suffering, we
must first identify its cause. According to the Buddha, craving or desire (tanha
or raga) is the cause of suffering. This is the Second Noble Truth. People crave
for pleasant experiences, crave for material things, crave for eternal life, and
when disappointed, crave for eternal death. They are not only attached to sensual
pleasures, wealth and power, but also to ideas, views, opinions, concepts, beliefs.
And craving is linked to ignorance, that is, not seeing things as they really
are, or failing to understand the reality of experience and life. Under the delusion
of Self and not realizing Anatta (non-Self), a person clings to things which are
impermanent, changeable, perishable. The failure to satisfy one's desires through
these things causes disappointments and suffering.
The Danger of Selfish Desire
Craving
is a fire which burns in all beings: every activity is motivated by desire. They
range from the simple physical desire of animals to the complex and often artificially
stimulated desires of the civilized man. To satisfy desire, animals prey upon
one another, and human beings fight, kill, cheat, lie and perform various forms
of unwholesome deeds. Craving is a powerful mental force present in all forms
of life, and is the chief cause of the ills in life. It is this craving that leads
to repeated births in the cycle of existence.
Once we have realized the cause
of suffering, we are in the position to put an end to suffering. So, how do we
put an end to suffering? Eliminate it at its root by the removal of craving in
the mind. This is the Third Noble Truth. The state where craving ceases is known
as Nibbana. The word Nibbana is composed of 'ni' and 'vana', meaning the departure
from or end of craving. This is a state which is free from suffering and rounds
of rebirth. This is a state which is not subjected to the laws of birth, decay
and death. This state is so sublime that no human language can express it. Nibbana
is Unborn, Unoriginated, Uncreated, Unformed. If there were not this Unborn, this
Unoriginated, this Uncreated, this Unformed, then escape from the conditioned
world is not possible.
Nibbana is beyond logic and reasoning. We may engage
in highly speculative discussions regarding Nibbana or ultimate reality, but this
is not the way to really understand it. To understand and realize the truth of
Nibbana, it is necessary for us to walk the Eightfold Path, and to train and purify
ourselves with diligence and patience. Through spiritual development and maturity,
we will be able to realize the Third Noble Truth.
The Noble Eightfold Path
is the Fourth Noble Truth which leads to Nibbana. It is a way of life consisting
of eight factors. By walking on this Path, it will be possible for us to see an
end to suffering. Because Buddhism is a logical and consistent teaching embracing
every aspect of life, this noble Path also serves as the finest possible code
for leading a happy life. Its practice brings benefits to oneself and other, and
it is not a Path to be practised by those who call themselves Buddhists alone,
but by each and every understanding person, irrespective of his religious beliefs.
The
Noble Eightfold Path?The Middle Way
This is the Path for leading a religious
life without going to extremes.
An outstanding aspect of the Buddha's Teaching
is the adoption of the Eightfold Path is the Middle Path. The Buddha advised His
followers to follow this Path so as to avoid the extremes of sensual pleasures
and self-mortification. The Middle Path is a righteous way of life which does
not advocate the acceptance of decrees given by someone outside oneself. A person
practises the Middle Path, the guide for moral conduct, not out of fear of nay
supernatural agency, but out of the intrinsic value in following such an action.
He chooses this self-imposed discipline for a definite end in view: self-purification.
The
Middle Path is a planned course of inward culture and progress. A person can make
real progress in righteousness and insight by following this Path, and not by
engaging in external worship and prayers. According to the Buddha, anyone who
lives in accordance with the Dhamma will be guided and protected by that very
Law. When a person lives according to Dhamma, he will also be living in harmony
with the universal law.
Every Buddhist is encouraged to mould his life according
to the Noble Eightfold Path as taught by the Buddha. He who adjusts his life according
to this noble way of living will be free from miseries and calamities both in
this life-time and hereafter. He will also be able to develop his mind by restraining
from evil and observing morality.
The Eightfold Path can be compared to a road
map. Just as a traveler will need a map to lead him to his destination, we all
need the Eightfold Path which shows us how to attain Nibbana, the final goal of
human life. To attain the final goal, there are three aspects of the Eightfold
path to be developed by the devotee. He has to develop Sila(Morality), Samadhi(Mental
Culture) and Panna (Wisdom). While the three must be developed simultaneously,
the intensity with which any one area is to be practised varies according to a
person's own spiritual development. A devotee must first develop his morality,
that is, his actions should bring good to other living beings. He does this by
faithfully adhering to the precepts of abstaining from killing, slandering, stealing,
becoming intoxicated or being lustful. As he develops his morality, his mind will
become more easily controlled, enabling him to develop his powers of concentration.
Finally, with the development of concentration, wisdom will arise.
Gradual
Development
With His infinite wisdom, the Buddha knew that not all humans have
the same ability to reach spiritual maturity at once. So He expounded the Noble
Eightfold Path for the gradual development of the spiritual way of life in a practical
way. He knew that not all people can become perfect in one lifetime. He said that
Sila, Samadhi, and Panna, must and can be developed over many lifetimes with diligent
effort. This path finally leads to the attainment of ultimate peace where there
is no more unsatisfactoriness.
Righteous Life
The Eightfold path consists
of the following eight factors:
Right Speech
Sila Right Action Morality
Right
Livelihood
Right Effort
Samadhi Right Mindfulness Mental culture
Right
Concentration
Right Understanding
Panna Right Thoughts Wisdom
What is
Right Understanding? It is explained as having the knowledge of the Four Noble
Truths. In other words, it is the understanding of things as they really are.
Right Understanding also means that one understands the nature of what are wholesome
kamma(merits) and unwholesome kamma(demerits), and how they may be performed with
the body, speech and mind. By understanding kamma, a person will learn to avoid
evil and do good, thereby creating favorable outcomes in his life. When a person
has Right Understanding, he also understands the Three Characteristics of Life
(that all compounded things are transient, subject to suffering, and without a
Self) and understands the Law of Dependent Origination. A person with complete
Right Understanding is one who is free from ignorance, and by the nature of that
enlightenment removes the roots of evil from his mind and becomes liberated. A
lofty aim of a practising Buddhist is to cultivate Wisdom and gain Right Understanding
about himself, life and all phenomena.
When a person has Right Understanding,
he or she develops Right Thought as well. This factor is sometimes known as 'Right
Resolution', 'Right Aspirations" and 'Right Ideas'. It refers to the mental
state which eliminates wrong ideas or notions and promotes the other moral factors
to be directed to Nibbana. This factor serves a double purpose of eliminating
evil thoughts and developing pure thoughts. Right Thought is important because
it is one's thoughts which either purify or defile a person.
There are three
aspects to Right Thought. First, a person should maintaining an attitude of detachment
from worldly pleasures rather than being selfishly attached to them. He should
be selfless in his thoughts and think of the welfare of others. Second, he should
maintain loving-kindness, goodwill and benevolence in his mind, which is opposed
to hatred, ill-will or aversion. Third, he should act with thoughts of harmlessness
or compassion to all beings, which is opposed to cruelty and lack of consideration
for others. As a person progresses along the spiritual path, his thoughts will
become increasingly benevolent, harmless, selfless, and filled with love and compassion.
Right
Understanding and Right Thought, which are Wisdom factors, will lead to good,
moral conduct. There are three factors under moral conduct: Right Speech, Right
Action and Right Livelihood. Right Speech involves respect for truth and respect
for the welfare for others. It means to avoid lying, to avoid backbiting or slander,
to avoid harsh speech, and to avoid idle talk. We have often underestimated the
power of speech and tend to use little control over our speech faculty. But we
have all been hurt by someone's words at some time of our life, and similarly
we have been encouraged by the words of another. It is said that a harsh word
can wound more deeply than weapons, where as a gentle word can change the heart
and mind of the most hardened criminal. So to develop a harmonious society, we
should cultivate and use our speech positively. We speak words which are truthful,
bring harmony, kind and meaningful. The Buddha once said 'pleasant speech is sweet
as honey, truthful speech is beautiful like a flower, and wrong speech is unwholesome
like filth'.
The next factor under good, moral conduct is Right Action. Right
Action entails respect for life, respect for property, and respect for personal
relationships. It corresponds to the first three of the Five Precepts to be practised
by every Buddhist, that is, dear to all, and all tremble at punishment, all fear
death and value life. Hence, we should abstain from taking a life which we ourselves
cannot give and we should not harm other sentient beings. Respect for property
means that we should not take what is not given, by stealing, cheating, or force.
Respect for personal relationship means that we should not commit adultery and
avoid sexual misconducts, which is important for maintaining the love and trust
of those we love as well as making our society a better place to live in.
Right
Livelihood is a factor under moral conduct which refers to how we earn our living
in society. It is an extension of the two other factors of Right Speech and Right
Action which refer to the respect for truth, life, property and personal relationships.
Right
Livelihood means that we should earn a living without violating these principles
of a moral conduct. Buddhists are discouraged from being engaged in the following
five kinds of livelihood: trading in human beings, trading in weapons, trading
in flesh, trading in intoxicating drinks and drugs, and trading in poison. Some
people may say that they have to do such a business for their living and, therefore,
it is not wrong for them to do so. But this argument is entirely baseless. If
it were valid, then thieves, murderers, gangsters, thugs, smugglers and swindlers
can also just as easily say that they are also doing such unrighteous acts only
for their living and, therefore, there is nothing wrong with their way of life.
Some
people believe that fishing and hunting animals for pleasure and slaughtering
animals for food are not against the Buddhist precepts. This is another misconception
that arises owing to a lack of knowledge in Dhamma. All these are not decent actions
and bring suffering to other beings. But in all these actions, the one who is
harmed most of all is the one who performs these unwholesome actions. Maintaining
a life through wrong means is not in accordance with the Buddha's teaching. The
Buddha once said, 'Though one should live a hundred years immorally and unrestrained,
yet it would indeed be better to live one day virtuously and meditatively.' (Dhammapada
103) It is better to die as a cultured and respected person than to live as a
wicked person.
The remaining three factors of the Noble Eightfold Path are
factors for the development of wisdom through the purification of the mind. They
are Right Effort, Right Mindfulness, and Right Concentration. These factors, when
practised, enable a person to strengthen and gain control over the mind, thereby
ensuring that his actions will continue to be good and that his mind is being
prepared to realize the Truth, which will open the door to Freedom, to Enlightenment.
Right
Effort means that we cultivate a positive attitude and have enthusiasm in the
things we do, whether in our career, in our study, or in our practice of the Dhamma.
With such a sustained enthusiasm and cheerful determination, we can succeed in
the things we do. There are four aspects of Right Effort, two of which refer to
evil and the other two to good. First, is the effort to reject evil that has already
arisen; and second, the effort to prevent the arising of evil. Third, is the effort
to develop unarisen good, and fourth, the effort to maintain the good which has
arisen. By applying Right Effort in our lives, we can reduce and eventually eliminate
the number of unwholesome mental states and increase and firmly establish wholesome
thoughts as a natural part of our mind.
Right Effort is closely associated
with Right Mindfulness. The practice of mindfulness is important in Buddhism.
The Buddha said that mindfulness is the one way to achieve the end of suffering.
Mindfulness can be developed by being constantly aware of four particular aspects.
These are the application of mindfulness with regard to the body (body postures,
breathing so forth), feelings (whether pleasant, unpleasant or neutrally); mind(whether
the mind is greedy or not, angry, dispersed or deluded or not); and mind objects
(whether there are mental hindrances to concentration, the Four Noble Truths,
and so on). Mindfulness is essential even in our daily life in which we act in
full awareness of our actions, feelings and thoughts as well as that of our environment.
The mind should always be clear and attentive rather than distracted and clouded.
Whereas
Right Mindfulness is directing our attention to our body, feelings, mind, or mental
object or being sensitive to others, in other words, putting our attention to
where we choose to, Right Concentration is the sustained application of that attention
on the object without the mind being distracted. Concentration is the practice
of developing one-pointedness of the mind on one single object, either physical
or mental. The mind is totally absorbed in the object without distractions, wavering,
anxiety or drowsiness. Through practice under an experienced teacher, Right Concentration
brings two benefits. Firstly, it leads to mental and physical well-being, comfort,
joy, calm, tranquillity. Secondly, it turns the mind into an instrument capable
of seeing things as they truly are, and prepares the mind to attain wisdom.
The
Noble Eightfold Path is the fourth important truth taught by the Buddha. As a
competent spiritual physician, the Buddha has identified a disease that afflicts
all forms of life, and this is Dukkha or unsatisfactoriness. He then diagnosed
the cause of the unsatisfactoriness to be selfish greed and craving. He discovered
that there is a cure for the disease, Nibbana, the state where all unsatisfactoriness
ceases. And the prescription is the Noble Eightfold Path. When a competent doctor
treats a patient for a serious illness, his prescription is not only for physical
treatment, but it is also psychological. The Noble Eightfold path, the path leading
to the end of suffering, is an integrated therapy designed to cure the disease
of Samsara through the cultivation of moral speech and action, the development
of the mind, and the complete transformation of one's level of understanding and
quality of thought. It shows the way to gain spiritual maturity and be released
completely from suffering.
Everything
is Changeable
What exists is changeable and what is not changeable does not
exist.
Looking at life, we notice how it changes and how it continually moves
between extremes and contrasts. We notice rise and fall, success and failure,
loss and gain; we experience honor and contempt, praise and blame; and we feel
how our hearts respond to all that happiness and sorrow, delight and despair,
disappointment and satisfaction, fear and hope. These mighty waves of emotion
carry us up, fling us down, and no sooner we find some rest, then we are carried
by the power of a new wave again. How can we expect a footing on the crest of
the waves? Where shall we erect the building of our life in the midst of this
ever-restless ocean of existence?
This is a world where any little joy that
is allotted to beings is secured only after many disappointments, failures and
defeats. This is a world where scanty joy grows amidst sickness, desperation and
death. This is a world where beings who a short while ago were connected with
us by sympathetic joy are at the next moment in want of our compassion. Such a
world as this needs equanimity. This is the nature of the world where we live
with our intimate friends and the next day they become our enemies to harm us.
The
Buddha described the world as an unending flux of becoming. All is changeable,
continuous transformation, ceaseless mutation, and a moving stream. Everything
exists from moment to moment. Everything is a recurring rotation of coming into
being and then passing out of existence. Everything is moving from birth to death.
The matter or material forms in which life does or does not express itself, are
also a continuous movement or change towards decay. This teaching of the impermanent
nature of everything is one of the main pivots of Buddhism. Nothing on earth partakes
of the character of absolute reality. That there will be no death of what is born
is impossible. Whatever is subject to origination is subject also to destruction.
Change is the very constituent of reality.
In accepting the law of impermanence
or change, the Buddha denies the existence of eternal substance. Matter and spirit
are false abstractions that, in reality, are only changing factors (Dhamma) which
are connected and which arise in functional dependence on each other.
Today,
scientists have accepted the law of change that was discovered by the Buddha.
Scientists postulate that there is nothing substantial, solid and tangible in
the world. Everything is a vortex of energy, never remaining the same for two
consecutive moments. The whole wide world is caught up in this whirl and vortex
of change. One of the theories postulated by scientists is the prospect of the
ultimate coldness following upon the death or destruction of the sun. Buddhists
are not dismayed by this prospect. The Buddha taught that universes or world cycles
arise and pass away in endless succession, just as the lives of individuals do.
Our world will most certainly come to an end. It has happened before with previous
worlds and it will happen again.
'The world is a passing phenomenon. We all
belong to the world of time. Every written word, every carved stone, every painted
picture, the structure of civilization, every generation of man, vanishes away
like the leaves and flowers of forgotten summers. What exists is changeable and
what is not changeable does not exist.'
Thus all gods and human beings and
animals and material forms?everything in this universe?is subject to the law of
impermanence. Buddhism teaches us:
'The body like a lump of foam;
The feelings
like a water bubble;
Perception like a mirage;
Volitional activities like
a plantain tree;
And Consciousness like jugglery.'(Samyutta Nikaya)
What
is Kamma?
Kamma is an impersonal, natural law that operates in accordance with
our actions. It is a law in itself and does not have any lawgiver. Kamma operates
in its own field without the intervention of an external, independent, ruling
agent.
Kamma or karma can be put in the simple language of the child: do good
and good will come to you, now, and hereafter. Do bad and bad will come to you,
now, and hereafter.
In the language of the harvest, kamma can be explained
in this way: if you sow good seeds, you will reap a good harvest. If you sow bad
seeds, you will reap a bad harvest.
In the language of science, kamma is called
the law of cause and effect: every cause has an effect. Another name for this
is the law of moral causation. Moral causation works in the moral realm just as
the physical law of action and reaction works in the physical realm.
In the
Dhammapada, kamma is explained in this manner: the mind is the chief (forerunner)
of all good and bad states. If you speak or act with a good or bad mind, then
happiness or unhappiness follows you just as the wheel follows the hoof of the
ox or like your shadow which never leaves you.
Kamma is simply action. Within
animate organisms there is a power or force which is given different names such
as instinctive tendencies, consciousness, etc. This innate propensity forces every
conscious being to move. He moves mentally or physically. His motion is action.
The repetition of actions is habit and habit becomes his character. In Buddhism,
this process is called kamma.
In its ultimate sense, kamma means both good
and bad, mental action or volition. 'Kamma is volition,'says the Buddha. Thus
kamma is not an entity but a process, action, energy and force. Some interpret
this force as 'action-influence,' It is our own doings reacting on ourselves.
The pain and happiness man experiences are the result of his own deeds, words
and thoughts reacting on themselves. Our deeds, words and thoughts produce our
prosperity and failure, our happiness and misery.
Kamma is an impersonal, natural
law that operates strictly in accordance with our actions. It is law in itself
and does not have any lawgiver. Kamma operates in its own field without the intervention
of an external, independent ruling agency. Since there is no hidden agent directing
or administering rewards and punishments, Buddhists do not rely on prayer to some
supernatural forces to influence karmic results. According to the Buddha, kamma
is neither predestination nor some sort of determinism imposed on us by some mysterious,
unknown powers or forces to which we must helplessly submit ourselves.
Buddhists
believe that man will reap what he has sown; we are the result of what we were,
and we will be the result of what we are. In other words, man is not one who will
absolutely remain to be what he was, and he will not continue to remain as what
he is. This simply means that kamma is not complete determinism. The Buddha pointed
out that if everything is determined, then there would be no free will and no
moral or spiritual life. We would merely be the slaves of our past. On the other
hand, if everything is undetermined, then there can be no cultivation of moral
and spiritual growth. Therefore, the Buddha accepted neither strict determinism
nor strict undeterminism.
Misconceptions regarding Kamma
The misinterpretation
or irrational views on kamma are stated in the Anguttara Nikaya which suggests
that the wise will investigate and abandon the following views:
the belief
that everything is a result of acts in previous lives;
the belief that all
is the result of creation by a Supreme Ruler; and
the belief that everything
arises without reason or cause.
If a person becomes a murderer, a thief, or
an adulterer, and, if his actions are due to past actions, or caused by creation
of a Supreme Ruler, or if that happened by mere chance, then this person would
not be held responsible for his evil action.
Yet another misconception about
kamma is that it operates only for certain people according to their faiths. But
the fate of a man in his next life does not in the least depend on what particular
religion he chooses. Whatever may be his religion, man's fate depends entirely
on his deeds by body, speech and thought. It does not matter what religious label
he himself holds, he is bound to be happy world in his next life so long as he
does good deeds and leads an unblemished life. He is bound to be born to lead
a wretched life if he commits evil and harbors wicked thoughts in his mind. Therefore,
Buddhists do not proclaim that they are the only blessed people who can go to
heaven after their death. Whatever the religion he professes, man's kammic thought
alone determines his own destiny both in this life and in the next. The teaching
of kamma does not indicate a post-mortem justice. The Buddha did not teach this
law of kamma to protect the rich and to comfort the poor by promising illusory
happiness in an after life.
According to Buddhism kamma explains the inequalities
that exist among mankind. These inequalities are due not only to heredity, environment
and nature but also to kamma or the results of our own actions. Indeed kamma is
one of the factors which are responsible for the success and the failure of our
life.
Since kamma is an invisible force, we cannot see it working with our
physical eyes. To understand how kamma works, we can compare it to seeds: the
results of kamma are stored in the subconscious mind in the same way as the leaves,
flowers, fruits and trunk of a tree are stored in its seed. Under favorable conditions,
the fruits of kamma will be produced just as with moisture and light, the leaves
and trunk of a tree will sprout from its tiny seed.
The working of kamma can
also be compared to a bank account: a person who is virtuous, charitable and benevolent
in his present life is like a person who is adding to his good kamma. This accrued
good kamma can be used by him to ensure a trouble-free life. But he must replace
what he takes or else one day his account will be exhausted and he will be bankrupt.
Then whom will he be able to blame for his miserable state? He can blame neither
others nor fate. He alone is responsible. Thus a good Buddhist cannot be an escapist.
He has to face life as it is and not run away from it. The kammic force cannot
be controlled by inactivity. Vigorous activity for good is indispensable for one's
own happiness. Escapism is the resort of the weak, and an escapist cannot escape
the effects of the kammic law.
The Buddha says, 'There is no place to hide
in order to escape from kammic results.' (Dhammapada 127).
Our Own Experience
To understand
the law of kamma is to realize that we ourselves are responsible for our own happiness
and our own misery. We are the architects of our kamma. Buddhism explains that
man has every possibility to mould his own kamma and thereby influence the direction
of his life. On the other hand, a man is not a complete prisoner of his own actions;
he is not a slave of his kamma. Nor is man a mere machine that automatically release
instinctive forces that enslave him. Nor is man a mere product of nature. Man
has within himself the strength and the ability to change his kamma. His mind
is mightier than his kamma and so the law of kamma can be made to serve him. Man
does not have to give up his hope and effort in order to surrender himself to
his own kammic force. To off-set the reaction of his bad kamma that he has accumulated
previously, he has to do more meritorious deeds and to purify his mind rather
than by praying, worshipping, performing rites or torturing his physical body
in order to overcome his kammic effects. Therefore, man can overcome the effect
of his evil deeds if he acts wisely by leading noble life.
Man must use the
material with which he is endowed to promote his ideal. The cards in the game
of life are within us. We do not select them. They are traced to our past kamma;
but we can call as we please, do what suits us and as we play, we either gain
or lose.
Kamma is equated to the action of men. This action also creates some
karmic results. But each and every action carried out without any purposeful intention,
cannot become a Kusala-Kamma(skillful action) or Akusala-Kamma(unskillful action).
That is why the Buddha interprets kamma as volitional activities. That means,
whatever good and bad deeds we commit ourselves without any purposeful intention,
are not strong enough to be carried forward to our next life. However, ignorance
of the nature of the good and bad effect of the kamma is not an excuse to justify
or avoid the karmic results if they were committed intentionally. A small child
or an ignorant man may commit many evil deeds. Since they commit such deeds with
intention to harm or injure, it is difficult to say that they are free from the
karmic results. If that child touches a burning iron-rod the heat element does
not spare the child without burning his fingers. The karmic energy also works
exactly in the same manner. Karmic energy is unbiased, it is like energy of gravity.
The radical transformations in the characters of Angulimala and Asoka illustrate
man's potential to gain control over his kammic force.
Angulimala was a highway
robber who murdered more than a thousand of his fellow men. Can we judge him by
his external actions? For within his lifetime, he became an Arahanta and thus
redeemed his past misdeeds.
Asoka, the Indian Emperor, killed thousands and
thousands to fight his wars and to expand his empire. Yet after winning the battle,
he completely reformed himself and changed his career to such an extent that today,
'Amidst the tens of thousands of names of monarchs that crowd the columns of history,
their majesties and royal highnesses and the like, the name of Asoka shines and
shines almost alone, as a star,' says a well-known world historian H.G. Well.
Other Factors Which Support Kamma
Although Buddhism
says that man can eventually control his karmic force, it does not state that
everything is due to kamma. Buddhism does not ignore the role played by other
forces of nature. According to Buddhism there are five orders or processes of
natural laws(niyama) which operate in the physical and mental worlds:
seasonal
laws(utu niyama) physical inorganic order e.g., seasonal phenomena of winds and
rains, etc.
the biological laws (bija niyama) relating to seasonal changes
etc.,
the kammic law (kamma niyama) relating to moral causation or the order
of act and result,
natural phenomena (Dhamma niyama) relating to electrical
forces, movement of tides etc., and
psychological laws (citta niyama) which
govern the processes of consciousness.
Thus kamma is considered only as one
of the five natural laws that account for the diversity in this world.
Can
Kamma Be Changed?
Kamma
is often influenced by circumstances: beneficent and malevolent forces act to
counter and to support this self-operating law. These other forces that either
aid or hinder this kamma are birth, time or conditions, appearances, and effort.
A favorable birth (gati sampatti) or an unfavorable birth (vipatti) can develop
or hinder the fruition of kamma. For instance, if a person is born to a noble
family or in a state of happiness, his fortunate birth will provide an easy opportunity
for his good kamma to operate. An unintelligent person who, by some good kamma,
is born in a royal family, will, on account of his noble parentage be honored
by the people. If the same person were to have a less fortunate birth, he would
not be similarly treated.
Good appearance (upadhi sampatti) and poor appearance
(upadhi vipatti)are two other factors that hinder or favor the working of kamma.
If by some good kamma, a person obtains a good birth, but is born deformed by
some bad kamma, then he will not be able to fully enjoy the beneficial results
of his good kamma. Even a legitimate heir to a throne may not perhaps be raised
to that high position if he happens to be physically or mentally deformed. Beauty,
on the other hand, will be an asset to the possessor. A good-looking son of poor
parents may attract the attention of others and may be able to distinguish himself
through their influence. Also, we can find cases of people from poor, obscure
family backgrounds who rise to fame and popularity as film actors or actresses
or beauty queens.
Time and occasion are other factors that influence the working
of kamma. In the time of famine or during the time of war, all people without
exception are forced to suffer the same fate. Here the unfavorable conditions
open up possibilities for evil kamma to operate. The favorable conditions, on
the other hand, will prevent the operation of bad kamma.
Effort or intelligence
is perhaps the most important of all the factors that affect the working of kamma.
Without effort, both worldly and spiritual progress is impossible. If a person
makes no effort to cure himself of a disease or to save himself from his difficulties,
or to strive with diligence for his progress, then his evil kamma will find a
suitable opportunity to produce its due effects. However, if he endeavours to
surmount his difficulties, his good kamma will come to help him. When shipwrecked
in a deep sea, the Bodhisatta during one of his previous births, made an effort
to save himself and his old mother, while the others prayed to the gods and left
their fate in the hands of these gods. The result was that the Bodhisatta escaped
while the others were drowned.
Thus the working of kamma is aided or obstructed
by birth, beauty and ugliness, time and personal effort or intelligence. However,
man can overcome immediate karmic effects by adopting certain methods. Yet, he
is not free from such karmic effects if he remains within this Samsara?cycle of
birth and death. Whenever opportunities arise the same karmic effects that he
overcame, can affect him again. This is the uncertainty of worldly life. Even
the Buddha and Arahantas were affected by certain kammas, although they were in
their final birth.
The time factor is another important aspect of the karmic
energy for people to experience the good and bad effects. People experience certain
karmic effects only within this lifetime while certain karmic effects become effective
immediately hereafter the next birth. And certain other karmic effects follow
the doers as long as they remain in this wheel of existence until they stop their
rebirth after attaining Nibbana. The main reason for this difference is owing
to mental impulsion (Javana Citta) of the people at the time when a thought arises
in the mind to do good or bad.
Impartial Energy
Those who do not
believe that there is an energy known as kamma should understand that this karmic
energy is not a by-product of any particular religion although Hinduism, Buddhism
and Jainism acknowledge and explain the nature of this energy. This is an existing
universal law which has no religious label. All those who violate this law, have
to face the consequences irrespective of their religious beliefs, and those who
live in accordance with this law experience peace and happiness in their life.
Therefore, this karmic law is unbiased to each and every person, whether they
believe it or not; whether, they have a religion or not. It is like any other
existing universal law. Please remember that kamma is not the exclusive property
of Buddhism.
If we understand kamma as a force or a form of energy, then
we can discern no beginning. To ask where is the beginning of kamma is like asking
where is the beginning of electricity. Kamma like electricity does not begin.
It comes into being under certain conditions. Conventionally we say that the origin
of kamma is volition but this is as much conventional as saying that the origin
of a river is a mountain top.
Like the waves of the ocean that flow into one
another , one unit of consciousness flows into another and this merging of one
thought consciousness into another is called the working of karma. In short, every
living being, according to Buddhism, is an electricity current of life that operates
on the automatic switch of kamma.
Kamma being a form of energy is not found
anywhere in this fleeting consciousness or body. Just as mangoes are not stored
anywhere in the mango tree but, dependent on certain conditions, they spring into
being, so does kamma. Kamma is like wind or fire. It is not stored up anywhere
in the Universe but comes into being under certain conditions.
Rebirth
Unsatisfied
desire for existence and sensual pleasures is the cause of rebirth.
Buddhists
regard the doctrine of rebirth not as a mere theory but as a verifiable fact.
The belief in rebirth forms a fundamental tenet of Buddhism. However, the belief
in rebirth is not confined to Buddhist; it is also found in other countries, in
other religions, and even among free thinkers. Pythagoras could remember his previous
birth. Plato could remember a number of his previous lives. According to Plato,
man can be reborn only up to ten times. Plato also believed in the possibility
of rebirth in the animal kingdom. Among the ancient people in Egypt and China,
a common belief was that only well-known personalities like emperors and kings
have rebirths. A well-known Christian authority named Origen, who lived in 185-254
A.D., believed in rebirth. According to him, there is no eternal suffering in
a hell. Gorana Bruno, who lived in the sixteenth century, believed that the soul
of every man and animal transmigrates from one being to another. In 1788, a well-known
philosopher, Kant, criticized eternal punishment. Kant also believed in the possibility
of rebirth in other celestial bodies. Schopenhauer(1788-1860), another great philosopher,
said that where the will to live existed there must be of necessity life. The
will to live manifests itself successively in ever new forms. The Buddha explained
this 'will to exist' as the craving for existence.
It is possible but not
very easy for us to actually verify our past lives. The nature of mind is such
that it does not allow most people the recollection of their previous lives. Our
minds are overpowered by the five hindrances: sensual desire, ill-will, sloth,
restlessness and doubt. Because of these hindrances, our vision is earth-bound
and hence we cannot visualize rebirths. Just as a mirror does not reflect an image
when it is covered with dirt, so the mind does not allow most people the recollection
of previous lives. We cannot see the stars during daytime, not because they are
not there in the sky, but because they are outshone by the sunlight. Similarly,
we cannot remember our past lives because our mind at present is always over-burdened
with many thoughts in the present, day-to-day events and mundane circumstances.
A consideration of the shortness of our life-span on earth will help us to
reflect on rebirth. If we consider life and its ultimate meaning and goal, and
all the varied experience possible for man, we must conclude that in a single
life there is not enough time for man to carry out all that is intended by nature,
to say nothing about what man himself desires to do. The scale of experience is
enormous. There is a vast range of powers latent in man which we see and can even
develop if the opportunity is presented to us. This especially true today if special
investigation is made. We find ourselves with high aspirations but with no time
to attain them. Meanwhile, the great troop of passions and desires, selfish motives
and ambitions, make war within us and with others. These forces pursue each other
to the time of our death. All these forces must be tried, conquered, subdued and
used. One life is just not enough for all this. To say that we must have but one
life here with such possibilities put before us and impossible to develop is to
make the universe and life a huge and cruel joke.
The Buddha doctrine of rebirth
should be differentiated from the teachings of transmigration and reincarnation
of other religions. Buddhism denies the existence of a permanent, god-created
soul or an unchanging entity that transmigrates from one life to another.
Just
as relative identity is made possible by causal continuity without a Self or Soul,
so death can issue in rebirth without a transmigrating Soul. In a single life,
each thought-moment flashes in and out of being, giving rise to its successor
with its perishing. Strictly speaking, this momentary rise and fall of every thought
is a birth and death. Thus even in a single life we undergo countless births and
deaths every second. But because the mental process continues with the support
of a single physical body, we regard the mind-body continuum as constituting a
single life.
What we ordinarily mean by death is the cessation of the body's
vital functions. When the physical body loses its vitality it can no longer support
the current of consciousness, the mental side of the process. But as long as there
is a clinging to life, a desire to go on existing, the current of consciousness
does not come to a stop with the body's loss of life. Rather, when death takes
place, when the body dies away, the mental current, driven by the thirst for more
existence, will spring up again with the support of a new physical body, one which
has just come into being through the meeting of sperm and egg. Thus, rebirth takes
place immediately after death. The steam of memory may be interrupted and the
sense of identity transferred to the new situation, but the entire accumulation
of experience and disposition has been transmitted to the newborn being, and the
cycle of becoming begins to revolve for still another term.
For Buddhism,
therefore, death does not spell either the entrance to eternal life or complete
annihilation. It is, rather, the portal to a new rebirth which will be followed
by more growth, decay, and then till another death.
At the last moment, no
renewed physical functioning occurs in a dying man's mind. This is just like a
motorist releasing the accelerator before stopping, so that no more pulling power
is given to the engine. Similarly, no more material qualities of Kamma arise.
Buddhists do not maintain that the present life is the only life between two
eternities of misery and happiness; nor do they believe angels will carry them
to heaven and leave them there for all eternity. They believe that this present
life is only one of the indefinite numbers of states of being and that this earthly
life is but one episode among many others. They believe that all beings will be
reborn somewhere for a limited period of time as long as their good and bad Kamma
remains in the subconscious mind in the form of mental energy. The interpretation
of the subconscious mind in the Buddhist context should not be confused with that
given by modern psychologists since the concepts are not exactly synonymous.
What
is the cause of rebirth? The Buddha taught that ignorance produces desires. Unsatisfied
desire is the cause of rebirth. When all unsatisfied desire is extinguished, then
rebirth ceases. To stop rebirth is to extinguish all desires. To extinguish desire,
it is necessary to destroy ignorance. When ignorance is destroyed, the worthlessness
of every such rebirth, is perceived, as well as the paramount need to adopt a
course of life by which the desire for such repeated births can be abolished.
Ignorance also begets the illusive and illogical idea that there is only one
existence for man, and the other illusion that this one life is followed by states
of eternal pleasure or torment.
The Buddha taught that ignorance can be dispelled
and sorrow removed by realization of the Four Noble Truths, and not through any
other source. To disperse all ignorance, one must persevere in the practice of
an all-embracing altruism in conduct, intelligence and wisdom. One must also destroy
all desire for the lower, personal pleasures and selfish desire.
How does
rebirth take place? When this physical body is no more capable of functioning,
energies do not die with it, but continue to take some other shape or form, which
we call another life. The kammic force manifesting itself in the form of a human
being can also manifest itself in the form of an animal. This can happen if man
has no chance to develop his positive kammic forces. This force, called craving,
desire, volition, thirst to live, does not end with the non-functioning of the
body but continues to manifest itself in another form, producing re-existence
which is called rebirth.
Today, there are people in various countries who
have spontaneously developed memory of their past births. The experiences of these
people have been well-documented in newspapers and periodicals. Some of these
people never accepted that there was such a thing as rebirth until memory fragments
of their previous lives came to them. Much of the information they revealed about
their past lives has been investigated and found to be valid.
Through hypnotism,
some people have managed to reveal information of previous lives. Certain hypnotic
states that penetrate into the subconscious mind make the recalling of past lives
possible.
Rebirth or becoming again and again is a natural occurrence not
created by any particular religion or god. Belief in rebirth or disbelief does
not make any difference to the process of rebirth or avoiding rebirth. Rebirth
takes place as long as craving for existence and craving for sensual pleasures
or attachment exist in the mind. Those strong mental forces prevail in each and
every living being in this universe. Those who hope and pray that they be not
born again must understand that their wishes will not materialize until they make
earnest efforts to eradicate their craving and attachment. Having seen and experienced
the uncertainty and unsatisfactoriness of life under worldly conditions, wise
people try to rid themselves of these repeated births and deaths by following
the correct path. Those who cannot reduce their craving and attachment must be
prepared to face all unsatisfactory and uncertain situations associated with rebirth
and becoming again and again.
Is
Rebirth Simultaneous?
Another difficult thing to understand about rebirth is
whether the occurrence of rebirth is simultaneous or not. This is a controversial
issue even amongst prominent Buddhist Scholars. According to Abhidhamma, rebirth
(conception) takes place immediately after the death of a being without any intermediate
state. At the same time, some others believe that a person, after his death, would
evolve into a spirit form for a certain number of days before rebirth takes place.
Another interpretation regarding the same belief is that it is not the spirit,
but the deceased person's consciousness or mental energy remaining in space, supported
by his own mental energies of craving and attachment. However, sooner or later
rebirth must take place. The spirits (petas), who are beings born in spirit forms,
are unfortunate living beings and their lives in the spirit form is not permanent.
It is also a form of rebirth which is temporary.
Another concept that many
people cannot understand is that in the process of rebirth a man can be reborn
as an animal and an animal can be reborn as a man. The animal nature of the man's
mind and the animal way of life adopted by him can condition him to be born as
an animal. The condition and behavior of the mind is responsible for the next
existence. On the other hand, a person who is born in animal form, owing to certain
mental abuses during a previous birth, could be reborn as a human being, if that
animal has not committed any serious evil acts. It is a well-known fact that some
animals are very intelligent and understanding. This is a clear evidence to prove
that they are tending towards the human life. A person who is born as an animal
can again be born as a human being when the bad kamma which conditioned his birth
as an animal is expended and the good kamma which was stored becomes dominant.
Dying Moment
In the dying man's consciousness, there are
three types of consciousness (Vinnana) functioning at the moment of death :rebirth-linking
consciousness (patisandhi-citta), the current of passive consciousness or the
current of life-continuum (bhavanga) and consciousness disconnecting the present
life (cuti-citta). At the last moment of a man's present life the (patisandhi-citta)
or rebirth-linking consciousness arises, having the three signs as its objects.
The patisandhi-citta remains in the course of cognition for five faint thought-moments
Javana and then sinks down into bhavanga. At the end of bhavanga the cuti-citta
arises, disconnecting the present life and sinks down into bhavanga. At this very
moment comes the end of the present life. At the end of that bhavanga another
patisandhi-citta rises up in the next life and from this very moment the new life
begins. This is the process of death and rebirth according to Buddhism, and only
in Buddhism is the process of these natural phenomena found explained in minute
detail.
A Buddhist faces death not as a crisis in life but as a normal
event, for he knows that whoever is born must suffer, 'decay', and ultimately
die. Or, as someone so aptly puts it, 'Everyone is born with the certificate of
death at his birth.' If we could all look at death such an intelligent and rational
way, we would not cling to life so tenaciously.
'Ayamantima jatinatthidani
punabbhavo"
This is my final birth and there is no more rebirth for me.(Dhamma
Cakka Sutta).
Nibbana
Nibbana
is the highest bliss, a supramundane state of eternal happiness. The happiness
of Nibbana cannot be experienced by indulging the senses but calming them.
Nibbana
is the final goal of Buddhism. What is Nibbana then? It is not easy to know what
Nibbana really is; it is easier to know what Nibbana is not.
Nibbana is not
nothingness or extinction. Would the Buddha leave his family and kingdom and preach
for 45 years, all for nothingness?
Nibbana is not a paradise. Several centuries
after the Buddha, some of the Buddhist sects began to introduce Nibbana as a paradise.
Their purpose of equating Nibbana with a heavenly world was to convince the less-intellectually-gifted
and to attract them to the teachings of the sect. Striving for Nibbana came to
mean looking for a nice place where everything is beautiful and where everyone
is eternally happy. This might be a very comfortable folktale, but it is not the
Nibbana that the Buddha experienced and introduced. During His time the Buddha
did not deny the idea of paradise as it was presented in the early Indian religions.
But the Buddha knew that this paradise was within Samsara and the final liberation
was beyond it. The Buddha could see that the Path to Nibbana led beyond the heavens.
If Nibbana is not a place, where is Nibbana then? Nibbana exists just as fire
exists. However, there is no storage place for fire or for Nibbana. But when you
rub pieces of wood together, then the friction and heat are the proper conditions
for fire to arise. Likewise, when the nature in man's mind is such that he is
free from all defilements, then Nibbanic bliss will appear.
You can experience
Nibbana. Until you experience the supreme state of Nibbanic bliss, you can only
speculate as to what it really is. For those who insist on the theory, the texts
offer some help. The texts suggest that Nibbana is a supra-mundane state of unalloyed
happiness.
By itself, Nibbana is quite unexplainable and quite undefinable.
As darkness can be explained only by its opposite, light, and as calm can only
be explained by its opposite, motion, so likewise Nibbana, as a state equated
to the extinction of all suffering can be explained by its opposite?the suffering
that is being endured in Samsara. As darkness prevails wherever there is no light,
as calm prevails wherever there is no motion, so likewise Nibbana is everywhere
where suffering and change and impurity do not prevail.
A sufferer who scratches
his sores can experience a temporary relief. This temporary relief will aggravate
the wounds and cause the disease to be enhanced. The joy of the final cure can
hardly be compared to the fleeting relief obtained from the scratching. Likewise,
satisfying the craving for sense-desires brings only temporary gratification or
happiness which prolongs the stay in Samsara. The cure for the samsaric disease
is Nibbana. Nibbana is an end of the cravings which cause all the sufferings of
birth, old age, disease, death, grief, lamentation and despair. The joy of Nibbanic
cure can hardly be compared to the temporary Samsaric pleasure gained through
fulfilling the sense desires.
It is dangerous to speculate on what Nibbana
is; it is better to know how to prepare the conditions necessary for Nibbana,
how to attain the inner peace and clarity of vision that leads to Nibbana. Follow
the Buddha's advice: put His Teachings into practice. Get rid of all your defilements
which are rooted in greed, hatred, and delusion. Purify yourself of all desires
and realize absolute selflessness. Lead a life of right moral conduct and from
all selfishness and illusion. Then, Nibbana is gained and experienced.
Nibbana and Samsara
A well-known
Mahayana Buddhist scholar, Nagarjuna, says that Samsara and Nibbana are one. This
interpretation can easily be misunderstood by others. However to state that the
concept of Samsara and Nibbana are the same is to say that there is no difference
in voidness of component things and the unconditioned state of Nibbana. In accordance
with the Pali Tipitaka, Samsara is described as the unbroken continuation of the
five aggregates, four elements and twelve bases or sources of mental processes
whereas Nibbana is described as the extinction of those relative physical and
mental sources.
However, it is admitted that those who gain Nibbanic bliss,
can experience it during their existence in Samsara. In any case, after their
death, the link with those elements will be eliminated, for the simple reason
that Nibbana is unconditioned, not relative or interdependent. If there is to
be anything at all after Nibbana, it would have to be 'Absolute Truth'.
You
must learn to be detached from all worldly things. If there is any attachment
to anyone or to anything or if there is any aversion to anyone or anything, you
will never attain Nibbana, for Nibbana is beyond all opposites of attachment and
aversion, likes and dislikes.
When that ultimate state is attained, you will
fully understand this worldly life for which you now crave. This world will cease
to be an object of your desire. You will realize the sorrow and impermanence and
impersonality of all that lives and that does not live. By depending on teachers
or holy books without using your own effort in the right manner, it is difficult
to gain realization of Nibbana. Your dreams will vanish. No castles will be built
in the air. The tempest will be ended. Life's struggles will be over. Nature's
process will have ceased. All your worries, miseries, responsibilities, disturbances,
burdens, physical and mental ailments and emotions will vanish after attaining
this most blissful state of Nibbana.
To say that Nibbana is nothingness simply
because one cannot perceive it with the five senses, is as illogical as to say
that light does not exist simply because the blind do not see it.
Nibbana
is attainable inthis present life. Buddhism does not state that its ultimate goal
could be reached only in life beyond. When Nibbana is realized in this life with
the body remaining it is called Sopadisesa Nibbana. When an Arahant attains Pari
Nibbana, after the dissolution of the body, without any reminder of physical existence,
it is called Anupadisesa Nibbana.
Law of Dependent Origination
"No
God, no Brahma can be found
No matter of this wheel of life
Just bare
phenomena roll
Depend on conditions all.(Visuddhi Magga)"
The Law
of Dependent Origination is one of the most important teachings of the Buddha,
and it is also very profound. The Buddha has often expressed His experience of
Enlightenment in one of two ways, either in terms of having understood the Four
Noble Truths, or in terms of having understood the nature of the dependent origination.
However, more people have heard about the Four Noble Truths and can discuss it
than the Law of Dependent Origination, which is just as important.
Although
the actual insight into dependent origination arises with spiritual maturity,
it is still possible for us to understand the principle involved. The basis of
dependent origination is that life or the world is built on a set of relations,
in which the arising and cessation of factors depend on some other factors which
condition them. This principle can be given in a short formula of four lines:
When this is, that is
This arising, that arises
When this is not, that
is not
This ceasing, that ceases.
On
this principle of interdependence and relativity rests the arising, continuity
and cessation of existence. This principle is known as the Law of Dependent Origination
in Pali, Paticca-samuppada. This law emphasizes an important principle that all
phenomena in this universe are relative, conditioned states and do not arise independently
of supportive conditions. A phenomenon arises because of a combination of conditions
which are present to support its arising. And the phenomenon will cease when the
conditions and components supporting its arising change and no longer sustain
it. The presence of these supportive conditions, in turn, depend on other factors
for their arising, sustenance and disappearance.
The Law of Dependence Origination
is a realistic way of understanding the universe and is the Buddhist equivalent
of Einstein's Theory of Relativity. The fact that everything is nothing more than
a set of relations is consistent with the modern scientific view of the material
world. Since everything is conditioned, relative, and interdependent, there is
nothing in this world which could be regarded as a permanent entity, variously
regarded as an ego or an eternal soul, which many people believe in.
The phenomenal
world is built on a set of relations, but is this the way we would normally understand
the world to be? We create fictions of its permanency in our minds because of
our desires. It is almost natural for human beings to cling to what they consider
as beautiful or desirable, and to reject what is ugly or undesirable. Being subjected
to the forces of greed and hatred, they are misled by delusion, clouded by the
illusion of the permanency of the object they cling to or reject. Therefore, it
is hard for us to realize that the world is like a bubble or mirage, and is not
the kind of reality we believe it to be. We do not realize that it is unreal in
actuality. It is like a ball of fire, which when whirled around rapidly, can for
a time, create the illusion of a circle.
The fundamental principle at work
in dependent origination is that of cause and effect. In dependent origination,
what actually takes place in the causal process is described in detail. To illustrate
the nature of dependent origination of the things around us, let us consider an
oil lamp. The flame in an oil lamp burns dependent upon the oil and the wick.
When the oil and the wick are present, the flame in an oil lamp burns. If either
of these is absent, the flame will cease to burn. This example illustrates the
principle of dependent origination with respect to a flame in an oil lamp. Or
in an example of a plant, it is dependent upon the seed, earth, moisture, air
and sunlight for the plant to grow. All these phenomena arise dependent upon a
number of causal factors, and not independently. This is the principle of dependent
origination.
In the Dhamma, we are interested to know how the principle of
dependent origination is applied to the problem of suffering and rebirth. The
issue is how dependent origination can explain why we are still going round in
Samsara, or explain the problem of suffering and how we can be free from suffering.
It is not meant to be a description of the origin or evolution of the universe.
Therefore, one must not be mistaken into assuming that ignorance, the first factor
mentioned in the dependent origination, is the first cause. Since everything arises
because of some preceding causes, there can be no first cause.
According to
the Law of Dependent Origination, there are twelve factors which account for the
continuity of existence birth after birth. The factors are as follows:
Through
ignorance are conditioned volitional actions or kamma-formations.
Through volitional
actions is conditioned consciousness.
Through consciousness are conditioned
mental and physical phenomena.
Through mental and physical phenomena are conditioned
the six faculties(i.e., five physical sense-organs and mind).
Through the six
faculties is conditioned (sensorial and mental) contact.
Through (sensorial
and mental)contact is conditioned sensation.
Through sensation is conditioned
desire, 'thirst".
Through desire ('thirst') is conditioned clinging.
Through
clinging is conditioned the process of becoming.
Through the process of becoming
is conditioned birth.
through birth are conditioned decay, death, sorrow, lamentation,
pain, grief and despair.
This is how life arises, exists and continues, and
how suffering arises. These factors may be understood as sequentially spanning
over a period of three life-times; the past life, the present life, and the future
life. In the dependent origination, ignorance and mental formation belong to the
past life, and represent the conditions that are responsible for the occurrence
of this life. The following factors, namely, consciousness, mental and physical
phenomena, the six senses, contact, sensation, desire, clinging and becoming,
are factors involved in the present life. The last two factors, birth and decay
and death, belong to the future life.
In this law, the first factor of Ignorance
gives rise to Volitional Activities (or kamma). Ignorance means not knowing or
understanding the true nature of our existence. Through Ignorance, good or evil
deeds are performed which will lead a person to be reborn. Rebirth can occur in
various planes of existence: the human world, the celestial or higher planes,
or even suffering planes depending of the quality of a person's kamma. When a
person dies, his Volitional Activities will condition the arising of Consciousness,
in this case to mean the re-linking Consciousness which arises as the first spark
of a new life in the process of re-becoming.
Once the re-linking Consciousness
has taken place, life starts once again. Dependent on the Consciousness, there
arise Mind and Matter, that is, a new 'being' is born. Because there are Mind
and Matter, there arise the six Sense-organs (the sixth sense is the mind itself).
With the arising of the Sense-organs, there arises Contact. Contact with what?
Contact with sights, sounds, smells, tastes, tactile objects, and mental objects.
These sights, sounds, smells, tastes, tactile objects, and mental objects
can be beautiful, pleasing and enticing. On the other hand, they can be ugly and
distasteful. Therefore, dependent on Contact arises Sensations: feelings that
are pleasant, unpleasant or neutral. Because of these feelings, the laws of attraction
(greed)and repulsion (aversion) are now set in motion. Beings are naturally attracted
to pleasant objects and repelled by unpleasant objects. As a result of Sensation,
Desire arises. A person desires and thirsts for forms that are beautiful and enticing;
sounds that are beautiful and enticing; tastes, smells, touch, and objects which
the mind regards as beautiful and enticing. From these Desires, he develops very
strong Clinging to the beautiful object (or strongly rejects the repulsive object).
Now because of this Clinging and attachment, the next life is conditioned and
there arises Becoming. In other words, the processes of Becoming are set in motion
by Clinging.
The next link in this chain of Dependent Origination is that
Becoming conditions the arising of Birth. And finally, dependence on Birth arise
Decay and Death, followed by Sorrow, Lamentation, Pain, Grief and Despair.
The
process can be ceased if the formula is taken in the reverse order: Through the
complete cessation of ignorance(through the cultivation of Insight), volitional
activities or kamma-formations cease; through the cessation of volitional activities,
consciousness ceases; ? through the cessation of birth, the other factors of decay,
death, sorrow, etc., cease. Therefore, one can be free from the rounds of rebirth
through the eradication of ignorance.
To re-iterate what was mentioned earlier,
this doctrine of Dependent Origination merely explains the processes of Birth
and Death, and is not a theory of the evolution of the world. It deals with the
Cause of re-birth and Suffering, but in no way attempts to show the absolute Origin
of Life. Ignorance in Dependent Origination is the ignorance of the Four Noble
Truths. It is very important for us to understand the Four Noble Truths because
it is the ignorance of these Truths that has trapped us all in the endless cycle
of birth and death.
According to the Buddha, while He was speaking to Ananda:
It is by their not being able to comprehend the Dependent Origination, that people
are entangled like a ball of cotton, and not being able to see the Truth, are
always afflicted by Sorrow, --born often into conditions that are dismal and dreary,
where confusion and prolonged suffering prevail. And, they do not know how to
disentangle themselves to get out.
Eternalism and Nihilism
The Buddha
rejected both extremes of eternalism and nihilism.
To develop Right View
or Perfect View, we must first be aware of two views which are considered imperfect
or wrong.
The first view is eternalism. This doctrine or belief is concerned
with eternal life or with eternal things. Before the Buddha's time, it was taught
that there is an abiding entity which could exist forever, and that man can live
the eternal life by preserving the eternal soul in order to be in union with Supreme
Being. In Buddhism, this teaching is called sassata ditthi ----the view of eternalists.
Such views still exist even in the modern world owing to man's craving for eternity.
Why did the Buddha deny the teaching of eternalism? Because when we understand
the things of this world as they truly are, we cannot find anything which is permanent
or which exists forever. Things change and continue to do so according to the
changing conditions on which they depend. When we analyse things into their elements
or into reality, we cannot find any abiding entity, any everlasting thing. This
is why the eternalist view is considered wrong or false.
The second false
view is nihilism or the view held by the nihilists who claim that there is no
life after death. This view belongs to a materialistic philosophy which refuses
to accept knowledge of mental conditionality. To subscribe to a philosophy of
materialism is to understand life only partially. Nihilism ignores the side of
life which is concerned with mental conditionality. If one claims that after the
passing away or ceasing of a life, it does not come to be again, the continuity
of mental conditions is denied. To understand life, we must consider all conditions,
both mental and material. When we understand mental and material conditions, we
cannot say that there is no life after death and that there is no further becoming
after passing away. This nihilist view of existence is considered false because
it is based on incomplete understanding of reality. That is why nihilism was also
rejected by the Buddha. The teaching of kamma is enough to prove that the Buddha
did not teach annihilation after death; Buddhism accepts 'survival' not in the
sense of an eternal soul, but in the sense of a renewed becoming.
Throughout
the Buddha's long period of teaching the Dhamma to His followers, He actively
discouraged speculative arguments. During the 5th century B.C. India was a veritable
hive of intellectual activity where scholars, yogis, philosophers, kings and even
ordinary householders were constantly engaged in the philosophical arguments pertaining
to human existence. Some of these were either ridiculously trivial or totally
irrelevant. Some people wasted valuable time arguing at great length about all
manner of subjects. They were far more concerned about proving their powers in
mental gymnastics than seeking genuine solutions to the problems that beset humanity.
(In the 18th century Jonathan Swift satirized a similar pastime in England when
he showed the Lilliputians in 'Gulliver's Travels' waging a war to decide whether
an egg should be broken on its sharp end or its broad end).
The Buddha also
refused to get involved in speculations regarding the universe. He stated very
clearly that the problem facing mankind is not in his past or his future but in
the immediate present. Knowledge about Eternalism or Nihilism can in no way help
man to break the present fetters which bind him to existence and which are the
source of all his feelings of discontent which arise from his inability to completely
satisfy his cravings. The Buddha stated that before one can begin to tread the
path which leads to Nibbana one must have Right View. Only when one knows clearly
what one is seeking will one be able to attain it.
Can the First Cause be Known?
It is
rather difficult for us to understand how the world came into existence without
a first cause. But it is very much more difficult to understand how that first
cause came into existence at the beginning.
According to the Buddha, it is
inconceivable to find a first cause for life or anything else. For in common experience,
the cause becomes the effect and the effect becomes the cause. In the circle of
cause and effect, a first cause is incomprehensible. With regard to the origin
of life, the Buddha declares, 'Without cognizable end is this recurrent wandering
in Samsara(cycle of birth and death). Beings are obstructed by ignorance and fettered
by craving. A first beginning of these beings is not to be perceived. (Anamatagga
Samyutta in Samyutta Nikaya). This life-steam flows on ad infinitum, as long as
it is fed by the muddy waters of ignorance and craving. When these two are cut
off, only then does the life-steam cease to flow, only then does rebirth come
to an end.
It is difficult to conceive an end of space. It is difficult to
conceive an eternal duration of what we call time. But it is more difficult for
us to understand how this world came into existence with a first cause. And it
is more difficult to understand how that first cause came into existence at the
beginning. For if the first cause can exist though uncreated, there is no reason
why the other phenomena of the universe must not exist without having also been
created.
As to the question how all beings came into existence without a first
cause, the Buddhist's reply is that there is no answer because the question itself
is merely a product of man's limited comprehension. If we can understand the nature
of time and relativity, we must see that there could not have been any beginning.
It can only be pointed out that all the usual answers to the question are fundamentally
defective. If it is assumed that for a thing to exist, it must have had a creator
who existed before it, it follows logically that the creator himself must have
had a creator, and so on back to infinity. On the other hand, if the creator could
exist without a prior cause in the form of another creator, the whole argument
falls to the ground. The theory of a creator does not solve any problems, it only
complicates the existing ones.
Thus Buddhism does not pay much attention to
theories and beliefs about the origin of the world. Whether the world was created
by a god or it came into existence by itself makes little difference to Buddhist.
Whether the world is finite or infinite also makes little difference to Buddhists.
Instead of following this line of theoretical speculations, the Buddha advises
people to work hard to find their own salvation.
Scientists have discovered
many causes which are responsible for the existence of life, plants, planets,
elements and other energies. But it is impossible for anyone to find out any particular
first cause for their existence. If they go on searching for the first cause of
any existing life or thing, they point certain causes as the main cause but that
never becomes the first cause. In the process of searching for the first cause
one after the other, they will come back to the place where they were. This is
because, cause becomes the effect and the next moment that effect becomes the
cause to produce another effect. That is what the Buddha say, 'It is incomprehensible
and the universe is beginningless.'
Is there an Eternal Soul?
Belief
in an eternal soul is a misconception of the human consciousness.
Soul-Theories
With regard to the soul theory, there are
three kinds of teachers in the world:
The first teacher teaches the existence
of an eternal ego-entity that outlasts death: He is the eternalist.
The second
teacher teaches a temporary ego-entity which becomes annihilated at death: He
is the materialist.
The third teacher teaches neither an eternal nor a temporary
ego-entity: He is the Buddha.
The Buddha teaches that what we call ego, self,
soul, personality, etc., are merely conventional terms that do not refer to any
real, independent entity. According to Buddhism there is no reason to believe
that there is an eternal soul that comes from heaven or that is created by itself
and that will transmigrate or proceed straight away either to heaven or hell after
death. Buddhists cannot accept that there is anything either in this world or
any other world that is eternal or unchangeable. We only cling to ourselves and
hope to find something immortal. We are like children who wish to clasp a rainbow.
To children, a rainbow is something vivid and real; but the grown-ups know that
it is merely an illusion caused by certain rays of light and drops of water. The
light is only a series of waves or undulations that have no more reality than
the rainbow itself.
Man has done well without discovering the soul. He shows
no signs of fatigue or degeneration for not having encountered any soul. No man
has produced anything to promote mankind by postulating a soul and its imaginary
working. Searching for a soul in man is like searching for something in a dark
empty room. But the poor man will never realize that what he is searching for
is not in the room. It is very difficult to make such a person understand the
futility of his search.
Those who believe in the existence of a soul are not
in a position to explain what and where it is. The Buddha's advice is not to waste
our time over this unnecessary speculation and devote our time to strive for our
salvation. When we have attained perfection then we will be able to realize whether
there is a soul or not. A wandering ascetic named Vacchagotta asked the Buddha
whether there was an Atman (self) or not. The story is as follows:
Vacchagotta
comes to the Buddha and asks:
'Venerable Gotama, is there an Atman ?
The
Buddha is silent.
'Then Venerable Gotama, is there no Atman?
Again the Buddha
is silent.
Vacchagotta gets up and goes away.
After the ascetic has left,
Ananda asks the Buddha why He did not answer Vacchagotta's question. The Buddha
explains His position:
'Ananda, when asked by Vacchagotta, the Wanderer: 'Is
there a Self?, if I had answered: 'There is a Self'. Then, Ananda, that would
be siding with those recluses and brahmanas who hold the eternalist theory (sassata-vada).'
'And Ananda, when asked by the Wanderer: 'Is there no Self?, if I had answered:
'There is no Self', then that would be siding with those recluses and brahmanas
who hold the annihilationist theory( uccedavada)'.
'Again, Ananda, when asked
by Vacchagotta: 'Is there a Self? If I had answered: 'There is a Self', would
that be in accordance with my knowledge that all dhammas are without Self?
'Surely
not, Sir.'
'And again, Ananda, when asked by the Wanderer: 'Is there no Self?',
if I had answered: 'There is no Self', then that would have created a greater
confusion in the already confused Vacchagotta. For he would have thought: Formerly
indeed I had an Atman(Self), but now I haven't got one.' (Samyutta Nikaya).
The
Buddha regarded soul-speculation as useless and illusory. He once said, 'Only
through ignorance and delusion do men indulge in the dream that their souls are
separate and self-existing entities. Their heart still clings to Self. They are
anxious about heaven and they seek the pleasure of Self in heaven. Thus they cannot
see the bliss of righteousness and the immortality of truth.' Selfish ideas appear
in man's mind due to his conception of Self and craving for existence.
Anatta: The Teaching of No-Soul
The Buddha
countered all soul-theory and soul-speculation with His Anatta doctrine. Anatta
is translated under various labels: No-soul, No-self, egolessness, and soullessness.
To understand the Anatta doctrine, one must understand that the eternal soul
theory _ 'I have a soul' _ and the material theory _ 'I have no soul' _are both
obstacles to self-realization or salvation. They arise from the misconception
'I AM'. Hence, to understand the Anatta doctrine, one must not cling to any opinion
or views on soul-theory; rather, one must try to see things objectively as they
are and without any mental projections. One must learn to see the so-called 'I'
or Sour or Self for what it really is : merely a combination of changing forces.
This requires some analytical explanation.
The Buddha taught that what we
conceive as something eternal within us, is merely a combination of physical and
mental aggregates or forces (pancakkhandha), made up of body or matter (rupakkhandha),
sensation (vedanakkhandha), perception (sannakkhandha), mental formations (samkharakkhandha)
and consciousness (vinnanakkhandha). These forces are working together in a flux
of momentary change; they are never the same for two consecutive moments. They
are the component forces of the psycho-physical life. When the Buddha analyzed
the psycho-physical life, He found only these five aggregates or forces. He did
not find any eternal soul. However, many people still have the misconception that
the soul is the consciousness. The Buddha declared in unequivocal terms that consciousness
depends on matter, sensation, perception and mental formations and that is cannot
exist independently of them.
The Buddha said, 'The body, O monks, is not the
Self. Sensation is not the Self. Perception is not the Self. The mental constructions
are not the Self. And neither is consciousness the Self. Perceiving this, O monks,
the disciple sets no value on the body, or on sensation, or on perception, or
on mental constructions, or on consciousness. Setting no value of them, he becomes
free of passions and he is liberated. The knowledge of liberation arises there
within him. And then he knows that he has done what has to be done, that he has
lived the holy life, that he is no longer becoming this or that, that his rebirth
is destroyed.' (Anatta-Lakkhana Sutta).
The Anatta doctrine of the Buddha
is over 2500 years old. Today the thought current of the modern scientific world
is flowing towards the Buddha's Teaching of Anatta or No-Soul. In the eyes of
the modern scientists, man is merely a bundle of ever-changing sensations. Modern
physicists say that the apparently solid universe is not, in reality, composed
of solid substance at all, but actually a flux of energy. The modern physicist
sees the whole universe as a process of transformation of various forces of which
man is a mere part. The Buddha was the first to realize this.
A prominent
author, W.S. Wily, once said, 'The existence of the immortal in man is becoming
increasingly discredited under the influence of the dominant schools of modern
thought.' The belief in the immortality of the soul is a dogma that is contradicted
by the most solid, empirical truth.
The mere belief in an immortal soul, or
the conviction that something in us survives death, does not make us immortal
unless we know what it is that survives and that we are capable of identifying
ourselves with it. Most human beings choose death instead of immortality by identifying
themselves with that which is perishable and impermanent by clinging stubbornly
to the body or the momentary elements of the present personality, which they mistake
for the soul or the essential form of life.
About those researches of modern
scientists who are now more inclined to assert that the so-called 'Soul' is no
more than a bundle of sensations, emotions, sentiments, all relating to the physical
experiences, Prof. James says that the term 'Soul' is a mere figure of speech
to which no reality corresponds.
It is the same Anatta doctrine of the Buddha
that was introduced in the Mahayana school of Buddhism as Sunyata or voidness.
Although this concept was elaborated by a great Mahayana scholar, Nagarjuna, by
giving various interpretations, there is no extraordinary concept in Sunyata far
different from the Buddha's original doctrine of Anatta.
The belief in soul
or Self and the Creator God, is so strongly rooted in the minds of many people
that they cannot imagine why the Buddha did not accept these two issues which
are indispensable to many religions. In fact some people got a shock or became
nervous and tried to show their emotion when they heard that the Buddha rejected
these two concepts. That is the main reason why to many unbiased scholars and
psychologists Buddhism stands unique when compared to all the other religions.
At the same time, some other scholars who appreciate the various other aspects
of Buddhism thought that Buddhism would be enriched by deliberately re-interpreting
the Buddha word 'Atta' in order to introduce the concept of Soul and Self into
Buddhism. The Buddha was aware of this unsatisfactoriness of man and the conceptual
upheaval regarding this belief.
All conditioned things are impermanent,
All
conditioned things are Dukka?Suffering,
All conditioned or unconditioned things
are
soulless or selfless. (Dhammapada 277, 278, 279)
There is a parable in our
Buddhist texts with regard to the belief in an eternal soul. A man, who mistook
a moving rope for a snake, became terrified by that fear in his mind. Upon discovery
that it was only a piece of rope, his fear subsided and his mind became peaceful.
The belief in an eternal soul is equated to the rope?man's imagination.
Chapter
6
BUDDHISM VIS-A-VIS OTHER APPROACHES
Is Buddhism Similar to Other
Contemporary Teachings in India?
The Dhamma realized by the Buddha was unheard
before.
The Buddha said in His first sermon, the Dhammacakka Sutta, that the
Dhamma which He preached was unheard of before. Knowledge of the Dhamma which
arose was clear to His vision, to His knowledge, to His wisdom, to His penetration,
and to His Enlightenment.
Some people claim that the Buddha did not preach
a new doctrine but merely reformed the old teaching which was existing in India.
However, the Buddha was no mere reformer of Hinduism as some protagonists of this
ancient creed make Him out to be. The Buddha's way of life and doctrine were substantially
different from the way of life and the religious beliefs people had in India.
The Buddha lived, taught and died as a non-Vedic and non-Brahmanic religious Teacher.
Nowhere did the Buddha acknowledge His indebtedness to the existing religious
beliefs and practices. The Buddha considered Himself as initiating a rational
religious method, as opening a new path. In fact He had revolutionized the religious
way of life in a dignified manner.
That was the main reason why many other
religious groups could not agree with Him. He was condemned, criticized and insulted
by the most noted teachers and sects of the Vedic-Brahmanic tradition. It was
with the intention of destroying or absorbing the Buddha and His Teaching, that
the Brahmans of the pre-Christian era went so far as to accept the Buddha as an
Avatara or incarnation of their God. Yet some others despised Him as a vasalaka,
a mundaka, a samanaka, a nastika and sudra. (These words were used in India during
the Buddha's time to insult a religious man).
There is no doubt that the Buddha
reformed certain customs, religious duties, rites and ethics and ways of living.
The greatness of His character was like a pin-point that pricked the balloon of
false beliefs and practices so that they could burst and reveal their emptiness.
But as far as the fundamental, philosophical and psychological teachings are
concerned, it is groundless to say that the Buddha had copied ideas from any existing
religion at that time. For instance, the idea of the Four Noble Truths, the Eightfold
Path and Nibbana, were not known before His coming. Although the belief in kamma
and rebirth was very common, the Buddha gave quite logical and reasonable explanations
to this belief and introduced it as natural law of cause and effect. Despite all
these the Buddha did not ridicule any sincere existing religious belief or practice.
He appreciated the value in many where he found Truth and he even gave a better
explanation of their beliefs. That is why He once said that the Truth must be
respected wherever it is. However, He was never afraid to speak out against hypocrisy
and falsehood.
Is Buddhism a Theory or a Philosophy?
The
enlightenment of the Buddha is not a product of mere intellect.
During the
time of the Buddha there were many learned men in India who pursued knowledge
simply for its own sake. These people were full of theoretical knowledge. Indeed,
some of them went from city to city challenging anyone to a debate and their greatest
thrill was to defeat an opponent in such verbal combats. But the Buddha said that
such people were no nearer to the realization of the truth because in spite of
their cleverness and knowledge they did not have true wisdom to overcome greed,
hatred and delusion. In fact, these people were often proud and arrogant. Their
egoistic concepts disturbed the religious atmosphere.
According to the Buddha,
one must first seek to understand one's own mind. This was to be done through
concentration which gives one a profound inner wisdom or realization. And this
insight is to be gained not by philosophical argument or worldly knowledge but
by the silent realization of the illusion of the Self.
Buddhism is a righteous
way of life for the peace and happiness of every living being. It is a method
to get rid of miseries and to find liberation. The Teachings of the Buddha are
not limited to one nation or race. It is neither a creed nor a mere faith. It
is a Teaching for the entire universe. It is a Teaching for all time. Its objectives
are selfless service, good-will, peace, salvation and deliverance from suffering.
Salvation in Buddhism is an individual affair. You have to save yourself just
as you have to eat, drink and sleep by yourself. The advice rendered by the Buddha
points the Way to liberation; but His advice was never intended to be taken as
a theory or philosophy. When He was questioned as to what theory He propounded,
the Buddha replied that He preached no theories and whatever he did preach was
a result of His own experience. Thus His Teaching does not offer any theory. Theory
cannot bring one nearer to spiritual perfection. Theories are the very fetters
that bind the mind and impede spiritual progress. The Buddha said, 'Wise men give
no credence to passing theories. They are past believing everything they see and
hear.'
Theories are product of the intellect and the Buddha understood
the limitations of the human intellect. He taught that enlightenment is not a
product of mere intellect. One cannot achieve emancipation by taking an intellectual
course. This statement may seem irrational but it is true. Intellectuals tend
to spend too much of their valuable time in study, critical analysis and debate.
They usually have little or no time for practice.
A great thinker(philosopher,
scientist, metaphysician, etc.) can also turn out to be an intelligent fool. He
may be an intellectual giant endowed with the power to perceive ideas quickly
and to express thoughts clearly. But if he pays no attention to his action and
their consequences, and if he is only bent on fulfilling his own longings and
inclinations at any cost then, according to the Buddha, he is an intellectual
fool, a man of inferior intelligence. Such a person will indeed hinder his won
spiritual progress.
The Buddha's Teaching contains practical wisdom that cannot
be limited to theory or to philosophy because philosophy deals mainly with knowledge
but it is not concerned with translating the knowledge into day-to-day practices.
Buddhism lays special emphasis on practice and realization. The philosopher
sees the miseries and disappointments of life but, unlike the Buddha, he offers
no practical solution to overcome our frustrations which are part of the unsatisfactory
nature of life. The philosopher merely pushes his thoughts to dead ends. Philosophy
is useful because it has enriched our intellectual imagination and diminished
dogmatic assurance which closes the mind to further progress. To that extent,
Buddhism values philosophy, but it has failed to quench spiritual thirst.
Remember
that the chief aim of a Buddhist is to attain purity and enlightenment. Enlightenment
vanquishes ignorance which is the root of birth and death. However, this vanquishing
of ignorance cannot be achieved except by the exercise of one's confidence. All
other attempts, especially mere intellectual attempts are not very effective.
This is why the Buddha concluded: 'These [metaphysical]questions are not calculated
to profit; they are not concerned with the Dhamma; they do not lead to right conduct,
or to detachment, or to purification from lusts, or to quietude, or to a calm
heart, or to real knowledge, or to higher insight, or to Nibbana.' (Malunkyaputta
Sutta _ Majjhima Nikaya) In place of metaphysical speculation, the Buddha was
more concerned with teaching a practical understanding of the Four Noble Truths
that he discovered: what Suffering is: what the origin of Suffering is; what the
cessation of Suffering is; how to overcome Suffering and realize final Salvation.
These Truths are all practical matters to be fully understood and realized by
anyone who really experiences emancipation.
Enlightenment is the dispelling
of ignorance; it is the ideal of the Buddhist life. We can now clearly see that
enlightenment is not an act of the intellect. Mere speculation has something alien
to it and does not come so intimately into contact with life. This is why the
Buddha placed great emphasis on personal experience. Meditation is a practical
scientific system to verify the Truth that comes through personal experience.
Through meditation, the will tries to transcend the condition it has put on itself,
and this is the awakening of consciousness. Metaphysics merely ties us down in
a tangled and matted mass of thoughts and words.
Is Buddhism Pessimistic?
Buddhism
is neither pessimistic nor optimistic but a realistic religion.
Some critics
argue that Buddhism is morbid, cynical, hovering on the dark and shadowy side
of life, an enemy of harmless pleasures, and an unfeeling trampler on the innocent
joys of life. They see Buddhism as being pessimistic, as fostering an attitude
of hopelessness towards life, as encouraging a vague, general feeling that pain
and evil predominate in human affairs. These critics base their views on the First
Noble Truth that all conditioned things are in a state of suffering. They seem
to have forgotten that not only had the Buddha taught the cause and end of Suffering,
but he had taught the way to end Suffering. In any case, is there any religious
teacher who praised this worldly life and advised us to cling to it?
If the
founder of this religion, the Buddha, was such a pessimist, one would expect His
personality to be portrayed on more severe lines than has been done. The Buddha
image is the personification of Peace, Serenity, Hope and Goodwill. The magnetic
and radiant smile of the Buddha which is said to be inscrutable and enigmatic,
is the epitome of His doctrine. To the worried and the frustrated, His smile of
Enlightenment and hope is an unfailing tonic and soothing balm.
The Buddha
radiated His love and compassion in all directions. Such a person can hardly be
a pessimist. And when the sword-happy kings and princes listened to Him, they
realized that the only true conquest is the conquest of the Self and the best
way to win the hearts of the people was to teach them to appreciate the Dhamma---Truth.
The Buddha cultivated His sense of humor to such a high degree that His bitter
opponents were disarmed with the greatest ease. Often they could not help laughing
at themselves. The Buddha had a wonderful tonic; He cleaned their systems of dangerous
toxins and they became enthusiastic thereafter to follow in His footsteps. In
His sermons, dialogues and discussions, He maintained that poise and dignity which
won for Him the respect and affection of the people. How can such a person be
a pessimist?
The Buddha never expected His followers to be constantly brooding
over the suffering of life and leading a miserable and unhappy existence. He taught
the fact of suffering only so that He could show people how to overcome this suffering
and move in the direction of happiness. To become an Enlightened person, one must
have joy, one of the factors that the Buddha recommended us to cultivate. Joy
is hardly pessimistic.
There are two Buddhists texts called the Theragatha
and Therigatha which are full of the joyful utterances of the Buddha's disciples,
both male and female, who found peace and happiness in life through His Teaching.
The king of Kosala once told the Buddha that unlike many a disciple of other religious
systems who looked haggard, coarse, pale, emaciated and unprepossessing, His disciples
were 'joyful and elated, jubilant and exultant, enjoying the spiritual life, serene,
peaceful and living with a gazelle's mind, light-hearted.' The king added that
he believed that this healthy disposition was due to the fact that 'these Venerable
Ones had certainly realized the great and full significance of the Blessed One's
Teachings'(Majjhima Nikaya).
When asked why His disciples, who lived a simple
and quiet life with only one meal a day, were so radiant, the Buddha replied:
'They do not repent the past, nor do they brood over the future. They live in
the present. Therefore they are radiant. By brooding over the future and repenting
the past, fools dry up like green reeds cut down [in the sun](Samyutta Nikaya).
As a religion, Buddhism preaches the unsatisfactory nature of everything in
this world. Yet one cannot simply categorize Buddhism as a pessimistic religion,
because it also teaches us how to get rid of this unhappiness. According to the
Buddha, even the worst sinner, after paying for what he has done, can attain salvation.
Buddhism offers every human being the hope of attaining his salvation one day.
Other religions, however, take it for granted that some people will be bad forever
and have an eternal hell waiting for them. In that respect, such religions are
more pessimistic. Buddhists deny such a belief.
Buddhism is neither optimistic
nor pessimistic. It does not encourage man to look at the world through his changing
feelings of optimism and pessimism. Rather, Buddhism encourages us to be realistic:
we must learn to see things as they truly are.
Is Buddhism Atheistic?
Atheism
is associated with a materialistic doctrine that knows nothing higher than this
world.
The Buddha has condemned godlessness by which He meant the denial of
worship and renunciation, the denial of moral and social obligations, and the
denial of a religious life. He recognized most emphatically the existence of moral
and spiritual values. He acclaimed the supremacy of the moral law. Only in one
sense can Buddhism be described as atheistic, namely, in so far as it denies the
existence of an eternal omnipotent God or God-head who is the creator and ordainer
of the world. The word 'atheism', however, frequently carries a number of disparaging
overtones or implications which are in no way applicable to the Buddha's Teaching.
Those who use the word 'atheism', often associate it with a materialistic doctrine
that knows nothing higher than this world of the senses and the slight happiness
it can bestow. Buddhism advocate nothing of that sort.
There is no justification
for branding Buddhists as atheists, nihilists, pagans, heathens or communists
just because they do not believe in a Creator God. The Buddhist concept of God
is different from that of other religions. Differences in belief do not justify
name-calling and slanderous words.
Buddhism agrees with other religions that
true and lasting happiness cannot be found in this material world. The Buddha
adds that true and lasting happiness cannot be found on the higher or supramundane
plane of existence to which the name of heavenly or divine world is given. While
the spiritual values advocated by Buddhism are orientated to a state transcending
the world with the attainment of Nibbana, they do not make a separation between
the 'beyond' and the 'here and now'. They have firm roots in the world itself,
for they aim at the highest realization in this present existence.
PART
THREE LEADING A BUDDHIST LIFE
CHAPTER 7
MORAL FOUNDATION FOR MANKIND
What is the Purpose of life?
Man is the highest fruit on the tree
of evolution. It is for man to realize his position in nature and understand the
true meaning of his life.
To know the purpose of life, you will first have
to study the subject through your experience and insight. Then, you will discover
for yourself the true meaning of life. Guidelines can be given, but you must create
the necessary conditions for the arising of realization yourself.
There are
several prerequisites to the discovery of the purpose of life. First, you must
understand the nature of man and the nature of life. Next, you keep your mind
calm and peaceful through the adoption of a religion. When these conditions are
met, the answer you seek will come like the gentle rain from the sky.
Understanding
the nature of man
Man may be clever enough to land on the moon and discover
wondrous things in the universe, but he has yet to delve into the inner workings
of his own mind. He has yet to learn how his mind can be developed to its fullest
potential so that its true nature can be realized.
As yet, man is still wrapped
in ignorance. He does not known who he really is or what is expected of him. As
a result, he misinterprets everything and acts on that misinterpretation. Is it
not conceivable that our entire civilization is built on the misinterpretation?
The failure to understand his existence leads him to assume a false identity of
a bloated, self-seeking egoist, and to pretend to be what he is not or is unable
to be.
Man must make an effort to overcome ignorance to arrive at realization
and Enlightenment. All great men are born as human beings from the womb, but they
worked their way up to greatness. Realization and Enlightenment cannot be poured
into the human heart like water into a tank. Even the Buddha had to cultivate
His mind to realize the real nature of man.
Man can be enlightened _a Buddha?if
he wakes up from the 'dream' that is created by his own ignorant mind, and becomes
fully awakened. He must realize that what he is today is the result of an untold
number of repetitions in thoughts and actions. He is not ready-made: he is continually
in the process of becoming, always changing. And it is in this characteristic
of change that his future lies, because it means that it is possible for him to
mould his character and destiny through the choice of his actions, speech and
thoughts. Indeed, he becomes the thoughts and actions that he chooses to perform.
Man is the highest fruit on the tree of evolution. It is for man to realize his
position in nature and to understand the true meaning of his life.
Understanding
the nature of life
Most people dislike facing the true facts of life and prefer
to lull themselves into a false sense of security by sweet dreaming and imagining.
They mistake the shadow for the substance. They fail to realize that life is uncertain,
but that death is certain. One way of understanding life is to face and understand
death which is nothing more than a temporary end to a temporary existence. But
many people do not like even to hear of the word 'death'. They forget that death
will come, whether they like it or not. Recollections on death with the right
mental attitude can give a person courage and calmness as well as an insight into
the nature of existence.
Besides understanding death, we need a better understanding
of our life. We are living a life that does not always proceed as smoothly as
we would like it to. Very often, we face problems and difficulties. We should
not be afraid of them because the penetration into the very nature of these problems
and difficulties can provide us with a deeper insight into life. The worldly happiness
in wealth, luxury, respectable positions in life which most people seek is an
illusion. The fact that the sale of sleeping pills and tranquilizers, admissions
to mental hospital and suicide rates have increased in relation to modern material
progress is enough testimony that we have to go beyond worldly, material pleasure
to seek for real happiness.
The
need for a religion
To understand the real purpose of life, it is advisable
for a person to choose and follow an ethical-moral system that restrains a person
from evil deeds, encourages him to do good, and enables him to purify his mind.
For simplicity, we shall call this system 'religion'.
Religion is the expression
of the striving man: it is his greatest power, leading him onwards to self-realization.
It has the power to transform one with negative characteristics into someone with
positive qualities. It turns the ignoble, noble; the selfish, unselfish; the proud,
humble; the haughty, forbearing; the greedy, benevolent; the cruel, kind; the
subjective, objective. Every religion, represents, however imperfectly, a reaching
upwards to a higher level of being. From the earliest times, religion has been
the source of man's artistic and cultural inspiration. Although many forms of
religion had come into being in the course of history, only to pass away and be
forgotten, each one in its time had contributed something towards the sum of human
progress. Christianity helped to civilize the West, and the weakening of its influence
has marked a downward trend of the Occidental spirit. Buddhism, which civilized
the greater part of the East long before, is still a vital force, and in this
age of scientific knowledge is likely to extend and to strengthen its influence.
It does not, at any point, come into conflict with modern knowledge, but embraces
and transcends all of it in a way that no other system of thought has ever done
before or is ever likely to do. Western man seeks to conquer the universe for
material ends. Buddhism and Eastern philosophy strive to attain harmony with nature
or spiritual satisfaction.
Religion teaches a person how to calm down the
senses and make the heart and mind peaceful. The secret of calming down the senses
is to eliminate desire which is the root of our disturbances. It is very important
for us to have contentment. The more people crave for their property, the more
they have to suffer. Property does not give happiness to man. Most of the rich
people in the world today are suffering from numerous physical and mental problems.
With all the money they have, they cannot buy a solution to their problems. Yet,
the poorest men who have learnt to have contentment may enjoy their lives far
more than the richest people do. As one rhyme goes:
'Some have too much and
yet do crave
I have little and seek no more;
They are but poor though much
more they have
And I am rich with little store.
They poor, I rich, they
beg, I give;
They lack, I have; they pine, I live.'
Searching for a purpose
in life
The aim in life varies among individuals. An artist may aim to paint
masterpieces that will live long after he is gone. A scientist may want to discover
some laws, formulate a new theory, or invent a new machine. A politician may wish
to become a prime minister or a president. A young executive may aim to be a managing
director of multinational company. However, when you ask the artist, scientist,
politician and the young executive why they aim such, they will reply that these
achievements will give them a purpose in life and make them happy. Everyone aims
for happiness in life, yet experience shows time and again that its attainment
is so elusive.
Realization
Once
we realize the nature of life (characterized by unsatisfactoriness, change, and
egolessness)as well as the nature of man's greed and the means of getting them
satisfied, we can then understand the reason why the happiness so desperately
sought by many people is so elusive like catching a moon beam in their hands.
They try to gain happiness through accumulation. When they are not successful
in accumulating wealth, gaining position, power and honour, and deriving pleasure
from sense satisfaction, they pine and suffer, envying others who are successful
in doing so. However, even if they are 'successful' in getting these things, they
suffer as well because they now fear losing what they have gained, or their desires
have now increased for more wealth, higher position, more power, and greater pleasure.
Their desires can never seem to be completely satiated. This is why an understanding
of life is important so that we do not waste too much time doing the impossible.
It is here that the adoption of a religion becomes important, since it encourages
contentment and urges a person to look beyond the demands of his flesh and ego.
In a religion like Buddhism, a person is reminded that he is the heir of his karma
and the master of his destiny. In order to gain greater happiness, he must be
prepared to forego sort-term pleasures. If a person does not believe in life after
death, even then it is enough for him to lead a good, noble life on earth, enjoying
a life of peace and happiness here and now, as well as performing actions which
are for the benefit and happiness of others. Leading such a positive and wholesome
life on earth and creating happiness for oneself and others is much better than
a selfish life of trying to satisfy one's ego and greed.
If, however, a person
believes in life after death, then according to the Law of Karma, rebirth will
take place according to the quality of his deeds. A person who has done many good
deeds may be born in favorable conditions where he enjoys wealth and success,
beauty and strength, good health, and meets good spiritual friends and teachers.
Wholesome deeds can also lead to rebirth in the heavens and other sublime states,
while unwholesome deeds lead to rebirth in suffering states. When a person understands
the Law of Karma, he will then make the effort to refrain from performing bad
actions, and to try to cultivate the good. By so acting, he gains benefits not
only in this life, but in many other lives to come.
When a person understands
the nature of man, then some important realizations arise. He realizes that unlike
a rock or stone, a human being possesses the innate potential to grow in wisdom,
compassion, and awareness?and be transformed by this self-development and growth.
He also understands that it is not easy to be born as a human being, especially
one who has the chance to listen to the Dhamma. In addition, he is fully aware
that his life is impermanent, and he should, therefore, strive to practise the
Dhamma while he is still in a position to do so. He realizes that the practice
of Dhamma is a life-long educative process which enables him to release his true
potentials trapped within his mind by ignorance and greed..
Based on these
realizations and understanding, he will then try to be more aware of what and
how he thinks, speaks and acts. He will consider if his thoughts, speech and actions
are beneficial, done out of compassion and have good effects for himself as well
as others. He will realize the true value of walking the road that leads to complete
self transformation, which is known to Buddhists as the Noble Eightfold path.
This Path can help a person to develop his moral strength (sila)through the restraint
of negative actions and the cultivation of positive qualities conductive for personal,
mental and spiritual growth. In addition, it contains many techniques which a
person can apply to purify his thoughts, expand the possibilities of the mind,
and bring about a complete change towards a wholesome personality. This practice
of mental culture (bhavana) can widen and deepen the mind towards all human experience,
as well as the nature and characteristics of phenomena, life and the universe.
In short, this leads to the cultivation of wisdom (panna). As his wisdom grows,
so will his love, compassion, kindness, and joy. He will have greater awareness
to all forms of life and better understanding of his own thoughts, feelings, and
motivations.
In the process of self-transformation, a person will no longer
aspire for a divine birth as his ultimate goal in life. He will then set his goal
much higher, and model himself after the Buddha who has reached the summit of
human perfection and attained the ineffable state we call Enlightenment or Nibbana.
It is here that a man develops a deep confidence in the Triple Gem and adopts
the Buddha as his spiritual ideal. He will strive to eradicate greed, develop
wisdom and compassion, and to be completely liberated from the bounds of Samsara.
Buddhism for man in Society
This
religion can be practised either in society or in seclusion.
There are some
who believe that Buddhism is so lofty and sublime a system that it cannot be practised
by ordinary men and women in the workday world. These same people think that one
has to retire to a monastery or to some quiet place if one desires to be a true
Buddhist.
This is a sad misconception that comes from a lack of understanding
of the Buddha. People jump to such conclusions after casually reading or hearing
something about Buddhism. Some people form their impression of Buddhism after
reading articles or books that give only a partial or lopsided view of Buddhism.
The authors of such articles and books have only a limited understanding of the
Buddha's Teaching. His Teaching is not meant only for monks in monasteries. The
Teaching is also for ordinary men and women living at home with their families.
The Noble Eightfold Path is the Buddhist way of life that is intended for all
people. This way of life is offered to all mankind without any distinction.
The
vast majority of people in the world cannot become monks or retire into caves
or forests. However noble and pure Buddhism may be, it would be useless to the
masses if they could not follow it in their daily life in the modern world. But
if you understand the spirit of Buddhism correctly, you can surely follow and
practise it while living the life of an ordinary man.
There may be some who
find it easier and more convenient to accept Buddhism by living in a remote place;
in other words, by cutting themselves off from the society of others. Yet , other
people may find that this kind of retirement dulls and depresses their whole being
both physically and mentally, and that it may therefore not be conducive to the
development of their spiritual and intellectual life.
True renunciation does
not mean running away physically from the world. Sariputta, the chief disciple
of the Buddha, said that one man might live in a forest devoting himself to ascetic
practices, but might be full of impure thoughts and 'defilements'. Another might
live in a village or a town, practising no ascetic discipline, but his mind might
be pure, and free from 'defilements'. 'Of these two,' said, Sariputta, 'the one
who lives a pure life in the village or town is definitely far superior to, and
greater than, the one who lives in the forest.' (Majjhima Nikaya)
The common
belief that to follow the Buddha's Teaching one has to retire from a normal family
life is a misconception. It is really an unconscious defense against practising
it. There are numerous references in Buddhist literature to men and women living
ordinary, normal family lives who successfully practised what the Buddha taught
and realized Nibbana. Vacchagotta the Wanderer, once asked the Buddha straightforwardly
whether there were laymen and women leading the family life who followed His Teaching
successfully and attained the high spiritual states. The Buddha categorically
stated that there were many laymen and women leading the family life who had followed
His Teaching successfully and attained the high spiritual states.
It may be
agreeable for certain people to live a retired life in a quiet place away from
noise and disturbances. But it is certainly more praiseworthy and courageous to
practise Buddhism living among fellow beings, helping them and offering service
to them. It may perhaps be useful in some cases for a man to live in retirement
for a time in order to improve his mind and character, as a preliminary to moral,
spiritual and intellectual training, to be strong enough to come out later and
help others. But if a man lives all his life in solitude, thinking only of his
own happiness and salvation, without caring for his fellowmen, this surely is
not in keeping with the Buddha's Teaching which is based on love compassion and
service to others.
One might now ask, 'If a man can follow Buddhism while
living the life of an ordinary man, why was the Sangha, the Order of Monks, established
by the Buddha?' The Order provides opportunity for those who are willing to devote
their lives not only to their own spiritual and intellectual development, but
also to the service of others. An ordinary layman with a family cannot be expected
to devote his whole life to the service of others, whereas a Monk, who has no
family responsibilities or any other worldly ties, is in a position to devote
his life 'for the good of the many'.(Dr. Walpola Rahula)
And what is this
'good' that many can benefit from? The monk cannot give material comfort to a
layman, but he can provide spiritual guidance to those who are troubled by worldly,
family emotional problems and so on. The monk devotes his life to the pursuit
of knowledge of the Dhamma as taught by the Buddha. He explains the Teaching in
simplified form to the untutored layman. And if the layman is well educated, he
is there to discuss the deeper aspects of the teaching so that both can gain intellectually
from the discussion.
In Buddhist countries, monks are largely responsible
for the education of the young. As a result of their contribution, Buddhist countries
have populations which are literate and well-versed in spiritual values. Monks
also comfort those who are bereaved and emotionally upset by explaining how all
mankind is subject to similar disturbances.
In turn, the layman is expected
to look after the material well-being of the monk who does not gain income to
provide himself with food, shelter, medicine and clothing. In common Buddhist
practice, it is considered meritorious for a layman to contribute to the health
of a monk because by so doing he makes it possible for the monk to continue to
minister to the spiritual needs of the people and for his mental purity.
The Buddhist Way of Life for Householders
The
Buddha considered economic welfare as a requisite for human happiness, but moral
and spiritual development for a happy, peaceful and contented life.
A man
named Dighajanu once visited the Buddha and said, 'Venerable Sir, we are ordinary
laymen, leading a family life with wife and children. Would the Blessed One teach
us some doctrines which will be conducive to our happiness in this world and hereafter?
The Buddha told him that there are four things which are conducive to a man's
happiness in this world. First: he should be skilled, efficient, earnest, and
energetic in whatever profession he is engaged, and he should know it well (utthana-sampada);
second: he should protect his income, which he has thus earned righteously, with
the sweat of his brow (arakkha-sampada); third: he should have good friends (kalyana-mitta)
who are faithful, learned, virtuous, liberal and intelligent, who will help him
along the right path away from evil; fourth: he should spend reasonably, in proportion
to his income, neither too much nor too little, i.e., he should not hoard wealth
avariciously nor should he be extravagant?in other words he should live within
his means (sama-jivikata).
Then the Buddha expounds the four virtues conducive
to a layman's happiness hereafter: (1)Saddha: he should have faith and confidence
in moral, spiritual and intellectual values; (2)Sila: he should abstain from destroying
and harming life, from stealing and cheating, from adultery, from falsehood, and
from intoxicating drinks; (3)Caga: he should practise charity, generosity, without
attachment and craving for his wealth;(4)Panna: he should develop wisdom which
leads to the complete destruction of suffering, to the realization of Nibbana.
Sometimes the Buddha even went into details about saving money and spending
it, as, for instance, when he told the young man Sigala that he should spend on
fourth of his income on his daily expenses, invest half in his business and put
aside one fourth for any emergency.
Once the Buddha told Anathapindika, the
great banker, one of His most devoted lay disciples who founded for Him the celebrated
Jetavana monastery at Savatthi, that a layman who leads an ordinary family life
has four kinds of happiness. The first happiness is to enjoy economic security
or sufficient wealth acquired by just and righteous means (atthi-sukha); the second
is spending that wealth liberally on himself, his family, his friends and relatives,
and on meritorious deeds (bhogo-sukha); the third to be free from debts (anana-sukha);
the fourth happiness is to live a faultless, and a pure life without committing
evil in thought, word or deed (anavajja-sukha).
It must be noted here that
first three are economic and material happiness which is 'not worth part' of the
spiritual happiness arising out of a faultless and good life.
From the few
examples given above, one can see that the Buddha considered economic welfare
as a requisite for human happiness, but that He did not recognize progress as
real and true if it was only material, devoid of a spiritual and moral foundation.
While encouraging material progress, Buddhism always lays great stress on the
development of the moral and spiritual character for a happy, peaceful and contented
society.
Many people think that to be a good Buddhist one must have absolutely
nothing to do with the materialistic life. This is not correct. What the Buddha
teaches is that while we can enjoy material comforts without going to extremes,
we must also conscientiously develop the spiritual aspects of our lives. While
we can enjoy sensual pleasures as laymen, we should never be unduly attached to
them to the extent that they hinder our spiritual progress. Buddhism emphasizes
the need for a man to follow the Middle Path.
Chapter 8
Buddhist
Morality and practice
Buddhist Ethics
Man-made
moral laws and customs do not form Buddhist Ethics.
The world today is in
a state of turmoil; valuable ethics are being upturned. The forces of materialistic
skepticism have turned their dissecting blades on the traditional concepts of
what are considered humane qualities. Yet, any person who has a concern for culture
and civilization will concern himself with practical, ethical issues. For ethics
has to do with human conduct. It is concerned with our relationship with ourselves
and with our fellow-men.
The need for ethics arises from the fact that man
is not perfect by nature; he has to train himself to be good. Thus morality becomes
the most important aspect of living.
Buddhist ethics are not arbitrary standards
invented by man for his own utilitarian purpose. Nor are they arbitrarily imposed
from without. Man-made laws and social customs do not form the basis of Buddhist
ethics. For example, the styles of dress that are suitable for one climate, period
or civilization may be considered indecent in another; but this is entirely a
matter of social custom and does not in any way involve ethical considerations.
Yet the artificialities of social conventions are continually confused with ethical
principles that are valid and unchanging.
Buddhist ethics finds its foundation
not on the changing social customs but rather on the unchanging laws of nature.
Buddhist ethical values are intrinsically a part of nature, and the unchanging
law of cause and effect (kamma). The simple fact that Buddhist ethics are rooted
in natural law makes its principles both useful and acceptable to the modern world.
The fact that the Buddhist ethical code was formulated over 2,500 years ago does
not detract from its timeless character.
Morality in Buddhism is essentially
practical in that it is only a means leading to the final goal of ultimate happiness.
On the Buddhist path to Emancipation, each individual is considered responsible
for his own fortunes and misfortunes. Each individual is expected to work his
own deliverance by his understanding and effort. Buddhist salvation is the result
of one's own moral development and can neither be imposed nor granted to one by
some external agent. The Buddha's mission was to enlighten men as to the nature
of existence and to advise them how best to act for their own happiness and for
the benefit of others. Consequently, Buddhist ethics are not founded on any commandments
which men are compelled to follow. The Buddha advised men on the conditions which
were most wholesome and conducive to long term benefit for self and others. Rather
than addressing sinners with such words as 'shameful', 'wicked', 'wretched', 'unworthy',
and 'blasphemous' He would merely say, 'You are unwise in acting in such a way
since this will bring sorrow upon yourselves and others.'
The theory of Buddhist
ethics finds its practical expression in the various precepts. These precepts
or disciplines are nothing but general guides to show the direction in which the
Buddhist ought to turn to on his way to final salvation. Although many of these
precepts are expressed in a negative form, we must not think that Buddhist morality,
consists of abstaining from evil without the complement of doing good.
The
morality found in all the precepts can be summarized in three simple principles?'To
avoid evil; to do good, to purify the mind.' This is the advice given by all the
Buddhas. ----(Dhammapada, 183)
In Buddhism, the distinction between what is
good and what is bad is very simple: all actions that have their roots in greed,
hatred, and delusion that spring from selfishness foster the harmful delusion
of selfhood. These action are demeritorious or unskillful or bad. They are called
Akusala Kamma. All those actions which are rooted in the virtues of generosity,
love and wisdom, are meritorious--- Kusala Kamma. The criteria of good and bad
apply whether the actions are of thought, word or deed.
Buddhist ethics
are based on intention or volition
'Kamma is volition,' says the Buddha. Action
themselves are considered as neither good nor bad but 'only the intention and
thought makes them so.' Yet Buddhist ethics does not maintain that a person may
commit what are conventionally regarded as 'sins' provided that he does so with
the best of intentions. Had this been its position, Buddhism would have confined
itself to questions of psychology and left the uninteresting task of drawing up
lists of ethical rules and framing codes of conducts to less emancipated teachings.
The connection between thoughts and deeds, between mental and material action
is an extension of thought. It is not possible to commit murder with a good heart
because taking of life is simply the outward expression of a state of mind dominated
by hate or greed. Deeds are condensations of thoughts just as rain is a condensation
of vapor. Deeds proclaim from the rooftops of action only what has already been
committed in the silent and secret chambers of the heart.
A person who commits
an immoral act thereby declares that he is not free from unwholesome states of
mind. Also, a person who has a purified and radiant mind, who has a mind empty
of all defiled thoughts and feelings, is incapable of committing immoral actions.
Buddhist ethics also recognizes the objectivity of moral value. In other words,
the kammic consequences of actions occur in accordance with natural kammic law,
regardless of the attitude of the individual or regardless of social attitudes
toward the act. For example, drunkenness has kammic consequences; it is evil since
it promotes one's own unhappiness as well as the unhappiness of others. The kammic
effects of drunkenness exist despite what the drunkard or his society may think
about the habit of drinking. The prevailing opinions and attitudes do not in the
least detract from the fact that drunkenness is objectively evil. The consequences
_ psychological, social, and kammic _ make actions moral or immoral _ regardless
of the mental attitudes of those judging the act. Thus while ethical relativism
is recognized, it is not considered as undermining the objectivity of values.
What is Vinaya?
Vinaya
is the disciplinary code for self training laid down by the Buddha for monks and
nuns to observe. Vinaya plays a pivotal role in their monastic way of life.
The
Buddha did not formulate the code of discipline in a single exercise. However,
He instituted certain rules as and when the need arose. Vinaya Pitaka and its
commentary contain many significant stories about how and why certain rules were
laid down by the Buddha. According to the Buddha the best form of Vinaya was to
discipline the mind, words and action. The early disciples of the Buddha were
highly developed spiritually and they had little need for a set of rules to be
imposed upon them. However, as the monastic order (the Sangha) grew in numbers,
it attracted many others, some of whom were not so highly developed spiritually.
There arose some problems regarding their conduct and way of life such as taking
part in lay activities for their livelihood and yielding to temptation for sense
pleasure. Owing to this situation, the Buddha had to lay down guidelines for the
monks and nuns to follow so that they could distinguish the difference between
the life of monks and laymen. The holy order of the monks and the nuns was a well-established
religious order when compared with other existing acetic practices at that time.
The Buddha prescribed all the necessary guidance to maintain the holy order
in every aspect of life. When the Buddha passed away, these rules were collated
so that the Order could be organized around them. The code of conduct prescribed
by the Buddha can be divided into two broad areas. These are Universal Moral Codes,
Lokavajja, most of which are applicable to all members of the Order and lay people
alike for leading a religious life. Certain other disciplinary codes or rules
which can be instituted to meet the existing cultural and social constraints of
the country at any one time are called Pannatti Vajja. In the first category are
the Universal Laws which restricted all immoral and harmful evil deeds. The second
category of rules applied almost directly to the monks and nuns in the observance
of manners, traditions, duties, customs and etiquette. Breaking of moral codes
pertaining to the Lokavajja create bad reputation as well as bad kamma, whereas
violation of disciplinary codes based on social conditions do not necessarily
create bad kamma. However, they are subject to criticism as violation in any form
pollute the purity and dignity of the holy Order. These rules were largely based
on the socio-cultural situation or way of life prevailing in India 25 centuries
ago. According to the Maha Parinibbana Sutta, the Buddha had proclaimed that some
'minor' rules could be altered or amended to accommodate changes due to time and
environment, provided they do not encourage immoral or harmful behavior. In fact,
during the Buddha's time itself, certain minor rules were amended by the monks
with His permission. The Buddha also advocated that sick monks and nuns be exempted
from certain Vinaya rules. However, once the rules had been enumerated by the
disciples in the First Council, convened three months after the passing away of
the Buddha, it was decided that all the rules should be maintained in toto because
no one was certain as to which of the rules should be altered. Finally, the disciples
decided to uphold all the precepts prescribed by the Buddha. As time went on however,
the rules became fossilized and some orthodox disciples insisted that the rules
should be followed strictly to the letter rather than in the spirit. It was precisely
to prevent rigid adherence to mere rules of this kind that the Buddha did not
appoint a successor to take over after Him. He had said that the understanding
of the Dhamma and upholding of the Dhamma as the master should be enough to help
one lead a holy life. Another reason why the early disciples did not agree to
change any of the precepts was that there was no reason or occasion for them to
do so within such a short period of time after the passing away of the Buddha.
This was because, at that time, most of those who had renounced their worldly
life had done so with sincerity and conviction. However, when the social conditions
started to change and when Buddhism spread to many other parts of India and other
countries, the decision made by the disciples not to change any precepts in the
First Council became a very big problem because some of the rules could not be
adapted to meet the political and economic changes under varying circumstances.
Development of Sangha Community
The
Sangha community, in the course of time, evolved themselves into several sects,
many of whom, while adhering to some major precepts as laid down by he Buddha,
had, however, tended to ignore some of the minor rules. The Theravada sect appeared
to be more orthodox, while the Mahayana and some other sects tended to be more
liberal in their outlook and religious observances. The Theravada sect tried to
observe the Vinaya to the very letter despite of changing circumstances and environment.
Minor changes of the precepts had, however, taken place from time to time, but
were not officially recognized even amongst the members of the Theravada sect.
For instance, we can look at the rule regarding the partaking of food after the
stipulated time of the day. The Theravada sect has not openly acknowledged the
fact that certain variations could be allowed under special circumstances. Whilst
members of other schools adapt themselves to the wearing of robes with appropriate
colour and pattern, the Theravada sect has continued to adhere to the use of the
original robes that were traditionally prescribed despite the changed social and
climatic conditions. Many of practices of the monkhood are clearly understood
only by those who are born into traditional Buddhist cultures.
At the other
extreme, there are some monks who insist on observing the very letter of the Vinaya
code rather than in its spirit, even though such action would embarrass the people
around them. For example, more and more Buddhist monks are being invited to western
countries where the culture of the people and the climatic conditions are so vastly
different from that in Asia, but which could be regarded as strange and exotic
elsewhere. Here again the monk must apply his common sense and try not to make
a mockery of himself in the eyes of the people. The important rule to be observed
is that no immoral, cruel, harmful and indecent acts are created and that the
sensitivities of others are respected. If the monks can lead their lives as hones,
kind, harmless and understanding human beings by maintaining their human dignity
and disciplines, then such qualities will be appreciated in any part of the world.
Maintaining the so-called traditions and customs of their respective countries
of origin have little to do with the essence of the Dhamma as taught by the Buddha.
Then, there is another problem. Many people, especially those in the West
who have accepted the Buddhist way of life, having read the Vinaya rules in the
texts, think that the monks must follow all the rules in toto in any part of the
world, in exactly the same manner as they were recorded in the texts. We must
remember that some of these rules which were practised in Indian society 25 centuries
ago are irrelevant even in Asia today. It must be clearly borne in mind that the
Buddha instituted the rules only for the members of the Sangha community who lived
in India, in fact in the region where He lived. Those monks never had any experience
of the way of life in another country. Their main concern was with the spiritual
development with the minimum of disruption and annoyance to the society where
they lived. But if they lived today, they may experience many other new problems,
if they strictly observe all the rules in a country where people cannot appreciate
or understand them.
The disciplinary code for lay devotees show how a layman
can live a virtuous and noble life without renouncing the worldly life. The Buddha's
advice to lay people is contained in such discourses as the Mangala, Parabhava,
Sigalovada, Vasala and Vygghapajja and many other discourses.
Many Vinaya
rules apply only to those who have renounced the worldly life. Of course a layman
may follow some of the rules if they help him to develop greater spirituality.
Changing Society
When society
changes, monks cannot remain as traditionalists without adapting to the changes,
although they have renounced the worldly life. People who cannot understand this
situation criticize the behavior of certain monks because of those changes.
However,
when the monks want to amend even certain minor precepts, they would have to do
it with the sanction of a recognized Sangha Council. Individual monks are not
at liberty to change any Vinaya rules according to their whims and fancies. Such
a Council of Sangha members can also impose certain sanction against monks who
have committed serious violations of the disciplinary code and whose behavior
discredits the Sangha. The Buddha instituted the Council to help monks to prevent
evil deeds and avoid temptation in a worldly life. The rules were guidelines rather
than inviolable laws handed down by some divine authority.
In Asian countries
particularly, monks are accorded great respect and reverence. Lay people respect
them as teachers of the Dhamma and as men who have sacrificed the worldly life
in order to lead a holy life. Monks devote themselves to the study and practice
of the Dhamma and do not earn a living. Laymen, therefore, see to their material
well-being while they in turn look to the monks for their spiritual needs.
As
such, monks are expected to conduct themselves in such a way that will earn them
the respect and reverence of the public. If, for example, a monk is seen in a
disreputable place, he will be criticized even if he is not involved in any immoral
action. Therefore, it is the duty of the monks to avoid certain uncongenial surroundings
so as to maintain the dignity of the holy Order.
If a monk does not respect
the feelings of his lay devotees and behaves according to what he alone thinks
is right, then the lay devotees are not bound to look after his needs. There are
many instances recorded in the Buddhist Texts that even during the Buddha's time,
lay devotees had refused to look after arrogant, quarrelsome or irresponsible
monks. Monks can be criticized for doing certain worldly things which only lay
people are at liberty to do.
Dhamma
and Vinaya
Many people have not yet realized that the Dhamma, the Truth expounded
by the Buddha, is not changeable under any circumstances. Certain Vinaya rules
are also included into the same category and they are not subject to change under
any circumstances. But some other Vinaya rules are subject to change so as to
prevent certain undue inconveniences. Dhamma and Vinaya are not the same. Some
monks try to observe certain traditions rigidly as if they are important religious
principles although others cannot find any religious significance or implication
in their practices. At the same time some selfish and cunning persons may even
try to maintain certain outward manifestations of purity, in order to mislead
innocent devotees to regard them as pious and sincere monks. Many so-called Buddhist
practices in Asian countries that monks and others follow are not necessarily
religious precepts but traditional practices upheld by the people. On the other
hand, certain manners introduced for monks to observe as disciplines truly maintain
the dignity and serenity of the holy Order. Although religious traditions and
customs can create a congenial atmosphere for spiritual development, some Vinaya
rules need to be amended according to changing social conditions. If this is not
done, monks will have to face numerous problems in the course of their survival
and in their association with the public.
Some lay people criticize monks
for handling money. It is difficult to carry out their religious activities and
to be active in modern society without dealing with money. What a monk must do
is to consider himself as unattached to the money or property as personal belongings.
That is what the Buddha meant. Of course, there may be some who deliberately misinterpret
the rules to suit their material gain. They will have to bear the consequences
of their own inability to gain spiritual development.
However, those who choose
to confine themselves to an isolated area for meditation for peace of mind, should
be able to carry out their religious duties without hindrance from worldly things
which can become burdensome. But they must first ensure that they have enough
supporters to attend to their needs. While there can be such monks who wish to
retire completely from society there must be enough monks in society to attend
to the numerous religious needs of the general public. Otherwise, people may think
that Buddhism cannot contribute very much in their day to day lives.
Characteristic
of a Monk
Among the salient characteristics of a monk are purity, voluntary
poverty, humility, simplicity, selfless service, self-control, patience, compassion
and harmlessness. He is expected to observe the four kinds of Higher Morality
_ namely:
Patimokkha Sila --The Fundamental Moral Code (major offenses related
to immoral, cruel, harmful and selfish activities.)
Indriyasamvara Sila --Morality
pertaining to sense-restraint.
Ajivaparisuddhi Sila --Morality pertaining
to purity of livelihood.
Paccayasannissita Sila?Morality pertaining to the
use of requisites pertaining to life.
These four kinds of morality are collectively
called Sila-Visuddhi (Purity of Virtue).
When a person enters the Order and
receives his ordination he is called a Samanera _Novice Monk. He is bound to observe
Ten Samanera Precepts with certain disciplinary codes for leading a monastic life
until he receives his higher ordination?Upasampada _ to become a Bhikkhu or fully
fledged monk.
A bhikkhu or monk is bound to observe the above-mentioned four
kinds of higher morality which comprise 227 rules apart from several other minor
ones. The four major ones which deal with celibacy and abstinence from stealing,
murder, and false claims to higher spirituality must strictly be observed. If
he violates any one of these, a monk is regarded as a defeated person in the Sangha
community. He will be deprived of certain religious rights by the Sangha community.
In the case of other rules which he violates, he has to face many other consequences
and make amends according to the gravity of the offence.
Ten Meritorious
and Ten Evil Actions
A fortunate
or unfortunate life depends on individual merits and demerits.
The performance
of good actions gives rise to merit (punna), a quality which purifies and cleanses
the mind. If the mind is unchecked, it has the tendency to be ruled by evil tendencies,
leading one to perform bad deeds and getting into trouble. Merit purifies the
mind of the evil tendencies of greed, hatred and delusion. The greedy mind encourages
a person to desire, accumulate and hoard; the hating mind drags him to dislike
and anger; and the deluded mind makes one become entangled in greed and hatred,
thinking that these evil roots are right and worthy. Demeritorious deeds give
rise to more suffering and reduce the opportunities for a person to know and practise
the Dhamma.
Merit is important to help us along our journey through life.
It is connected with what are good and beneficial to oneself and others, and can
improve the quality of the mind. While the material wealth a person gathers can
be lost by theft, flood, fire, confiscation, etc., the benefit of merits follows
him from life to life and cannot be lost, although it can be exhausted if no attempts
are made to perform more merits. A person will experience happiness here and now
ass well as hereafter through the performance of merit.
Merit is a great facilitator:
It opens the doors of opportunity everywhere. A meritorious person will succeed
in whatever venture he puts his effort into. If he wishes to do business, he will
meet with the right contacts and friends. If he wishes to be a scholar, he will
be awarded with scholarships and supported by academic mentors. If he wishes to
progress in meditation, he will meet with a skillful meditation teacher who guides
him through his spiritual development. His dreams will be realized through the
grace of his treasury of merit. It is merit which enables a person to be reborn
in the heavens, and provides him with the right conditions and support for his
attainment of Nibbana.
There are several rich fields of merit (recipients
of the deed)which give rise to bountiful results to the performer of the good
deed. Just as some soil can yield a better harvest (say black fertile soil compared
to stony soil), a good deed performed to some persons can give rise to more merits
than to others. The rich fields of merits include the Sangha or holy people, mother,
father and needy. Good deeds performed to these persons will manifest in many
ways and be the fountainhead of many wondrous results.
The Buddha taught ten
meritorious deeds for us to perform in order to gain a happy and peaceful life
as well as to develop knowledge and understanding. The ten meritorious deeds are:
Charity
Morality
Mental culture
Reverence or respect
Service in
helping others
Sharing merits with others
Rejoicing in the merits of others
Preaching
and teaching the Dhamma
Listening to the Dhamma
Straightening one's views
The
performance of these ten meritorious deeds will not only benefit oneself, but
others as well, besides giving benefits to the recipients. Moral conduct benefits
all beings with whom one comes into contact. Mental culture brings peace to others
and inspires them to practise the Dhamma. Reverence gives rise to harmony in society,
while service improves the lives of others. Sharing merits with others shows that
one is concerned about others' welfare, while rejoicing in others' merits encourages
others to perform more merits. Teaching and listening to the Dhamma are important
factors for happiness for both the teacher and listener, while encouraging both
to live in line with Dhamma. Straightening one's views enables a person to show
to others the beauty of Dhamma. In the Dhammapada, the Buddha taught:
'Should
a person perform good,
He should do it again and again;
He should find pleasure
therein;
For blissful is the accumulation of good.'
'Think not lightly of
good, saying,
'It will not come near to me'?
Even by the falling of drops
a water-jar is filled.
Likewise the wise man, gathering little by little,
Fills
himself with good.'
Ten Evil Deeds
There are ten demeritorious deeds
from which Buddhists are advised to keep away. These deeds are rooted in greed,
hatred and delusion, and will bring suffering to others but especially to oneself
in this life and later lives. When a person understands the Law of Kamma and realizes
that bad deeds bring bad results, he will then practise Right Understanding and
avoid performing these actions.
There are three bodily actions which are kammically
unwholesome. They are: (1)Killing of living beings,(2)Stealing, and (3)Unlawful
sexual intercourse. These bodily deeds correspond to the first three of the Five
Precepts for people to follow.
The effects of killing to the performer of
the deed are brevity of life, ill-health, constant grief due to the separation
from the loved, and living in constant fear. The bad consequences of stealing
are poverty, misery, disappointment, and a dependent livelihood. The bad consequences
of sexual misconduct are having many enemies, always being hated, and union with
undesirable wives and husbands.
Four verbal actions are kammically unwholesome,
and they are as follows: (1)Lying, (2)Slander and tale-bearing, (3)harsh speech,
and (4)Frivolous and meaningless talk. Except for lying, the other unwholesome
deeds performed by speech may be viewed as extensions of the Fourth Precept.
The
bad consequences of lying to the one who performs the deed are being subject to
abusive speech and vilification, untrustworthiness, and physical unpleasantness.
The bad effect of slandering is losing one's friends without any sufficient cause.
The results of harsh speech are being detested by others and having a harsh voice.
The inevitable effects of frivolous talk are defective bodily organs and speech
which no one believes.
The three other demeritorious deeds are performed by
the mind, and they are as follows: (1)Covetousness, or eagerly desirous especially
of things belonging to others, (2)Ill-will, and (3)Wrong view. These three deeds
correspond to the three evil roots of greed, hatred and delusion. The non-observance
of the Fifth Precept of abstention from intoxicants can not only lead to the performance
of these three demeritorious mental actions after the mind is intoxicated, but
also the other demeritorious deeds performed by body and speech.
The undesirable
result of covetousness is the non-fulfillment of one's wishes. The consequences
of ill-ill are ugliness, manifold diseases, and having a detestable nature. Finally,
the consequences of false view are having gross desires, lack of wisdom, being
of dull wit, having chronic diseases and blameworthy ideas.
A person should
always perform good actions and restrain himself from doing evil actions. If,
however, a person has performed an evil action, it is necessary for him to realize
where he has done wrong and make an effort not to repeat the mistake. This is
the true meaning of repentance, and in this way only will a person progress along
the noble path to salvation.
Praying for forgiveness is meaningless if, after
the prayer is made, a person repeats the veil action again and again. Who is there
to 'wash away a person's sins' except he himself? This has to begin with realization,
the wonderful cleansing agent. First, he realizes the nature of his deed and the
extent of the harm incurred. Next, he realizes that this deed is unwholesome,
learns from it, and makes the resolution not to repeat it. Then, he performs many
good deeds to the affected party as well as to others, as much as possible. In
this way, he overcomes the effect of bad deed with a shower of good deeds.
No
wrong does, according to Buddhism, is beyond redemption or rehabilitation, especially
with realization and Right Effort. To be seduced into believing that a person
can 'wash away' his bad deeds through some other 'miraculous' way is not only
a mere superstition, but worse, it is also not useful particularly to the spiritual
development of the person himself. It will only cause him to continue to remain
ignorant and morally complacent. This misplaced belief can, in fact, do a person
much more harm than the effects of the wrong deed he feared so much.
Precepts
By
observing precepts, not only do you cultivate your moral strength, but you also
perform the highest service to your fellow beings.
Every country or society
has its code of what are considered to be moral actions within its social context.
These codes are often linked to the society's interest and its code of law. An
action is considered right so long as it does not break the law and transgress
public or individual sensitivities. These man-made codes are flexible and amended
from time to time to suit changing circumstances. Important as they are to society,
these man-made standards cannot serve as a reliable guide to some principles of
morality which can be applied universally.
By contrast, Buddhist morality
is not the invention of human minds. Neither is it based on tribal ethics which
are gradually being replaced by humanistic codes. It is based on the universal
law of cause and effect (kamma), and considers a 'good' or 'bad' action in terms
of the manner it affects oneself and others. An action, even if it brings benefit
to oneself, cannot be considered a good action if it causes physical and mental
pain to another being.
Buddhist morality addresses a very common, yet crucial
question: How can we judge if an action is good or bad? The answer, according
to Buddhism, is a simple one. The quality of an action hinges on the intention
or motivation (cetana)from which it originates. If a person performs an action
out of greed, hatred, and delusion, his action is considered to be unwholesome.
On the other hand, if he performs and action out of love, charity, and wisdom,
his action is a wholesome one. Greed, Hatred and Delusion are known as the 'Three
Evil Root', while love, charity and wisdom as the 'Three Good Roots'. The word
'root' refers to the intention from which that action originates. Therefore, no
matter how a person tries to disguise the nature of his action, the truth can
be found by examining his thoughts which gave rise to that action. And the mind
is the source of all our speech and action.
In Buddhism, a person's first
duty is to cleanse himself of the mental defilements of greed, hatred and ignorance.
The reason for doing this is not because of fear or desire to please some divine
beings. If this is so, a person is still lacking in wisdom. He is only acting
out of fear like the little child who is afraid of being punished for being naughty.
A Buddhist should act out of understanding and wisdom. He performs wholesome deeds
because he realizes that by so doing he develops his moral strength which provides
the foundation for spiritual growth, leading to Liberation. In addition, he realizes
that his happiness and suffering are self-created through the operation of the
Law of Kamma. To minimize the occurrence of troubles and problems in his life,
he makes the effort to refrain from doing evil. He performs good actions because
he know that these will bring him peace and happiness. Since everyone seeks happiness
in life, and since it is possible for him to provide the condition for happiness,
then there is every reason for him to do good and avoid evil. Furthermore, the
uprooting of these mental defilements, the source of all anti-social acts, will
bring great benefits to others in society.
Five
Precepts
Lay Buddhist morality is embodies in the Five Precepts, which may
be considered at two levels. First, it enables men to live together in civilized
communities with mutual trust and respect. Second, it is the starting point for
the spiritual journey towards Liberation. Unlike commandments, which are supposedly
divine commands imposed on men, precepts are accepted voluntarily by the person
himself, especially when he realizes the usefulness of adopting some training
rules for disciplining his body, speech and mind. Understanding, rather than fear
of punishment, is the reason for following the precepts. A good Buddhist should
remind himself to follow the Five Precepts daily. They are as follows:
no
killing living creatures
no taking what is not given
no sexual misconduct
no
false speech
no use of intoxicating drugs and liquor,
Besides understanding
the Five Precepts merely as a set of rules of abstention, a Buddhist should remind
himself that through the precepts he practices the Five Ennoblers as well. While
the Five Precepts tells him what not to do, the Five Ennoblers tells him which
qualities to cultivate, namely, loving kindness, renunciation, contentment, truthfulness,
and mindfulness. When a person observes the First precept of not killing, he controls
his hatred and cultivates loving kindness. In the Second Precept, he controls
his greed and cultivates his renunciation or non-attachment. He controls sensual
lust and cultivates his contentment in the Third Precept. In the Fourth Precept,
he abstains from false speech and cultivates truthfulness, while he abstains from
unwholesome mental excitement and develop mindfulness through the Fifth Precept.
Therefore, when a person understands the ennoblers, he will realize that the observance
of the Five Precepts does not cause him to be withdrawn, self-critical and negative,
but to be a positive personality filled with love and care as well as other qualities
accruing to one who leads a moral life.
The precepts are the basic practice
in Buddhism. The purpose is to eliminate crude passions that are expressed through
thought, word and deed. The precepts are also an indispensable basis for people
who wish to cultivate their minds. Without some basic moral code, the power of
meditation can often be applied for some wrong and selfish motive.
Eight
Precepts
In many Buddhist countries, it is customary among the devotees to
observe the Eight Precepts on certain days of the month, such as the full moon
and new moon days. These devotees will come to the temple early in the morning
and spend twenty-four hours in the temple, observing the precepts. By observing
the Eight Precepts, they cut themselves off from their daily life which is bombarded
with material and sensual demands. The purpose of observing the Eight Precepts
is to develop relaxation and tranquillity, to train the mind, and to develop oneself
spiritually.
During this period of observing the precepts, they spend their
time reading religious books, listening to the Teachings of the Buddha, meditating,
and also helping with the religious activities of the temple. The following morning,
they change from Eight Precepts to the Five Precepts intended for daily observance,
and return home to resume their normal life.
The Eight Precepts are to abstain
from:
Killing;
Stealing;
Sexual acts;
Lying;
Liquor
Taking
food after the sun had crossed the zenith.
Dancing, singing, music, unseemly
shows, the use of garlands, perfumes, unguents and things that tend to beautify
and adorn the person, and
Using high and luxurious seats.
Some people find
it hard to understand the significance of a few of these precepts. They think
that Buddhists are against dancing, singing, music, the cinema, perfume, ornaments
and luxurious things. There is no rule in Buddhism that states that every lay
Buddhist must abstain from these things. The people who choose to abstain from
these entertainments are devout Buddhists who observe these precepts only for
a short period as a way of self discipline. The reason for keeping away from these
entertainments and ornamentations is to calm down the senses even for a few hours
and to train the mind so as not to be enslaved to sensual pleasures. These entertainments
increase the passions of the mind and arouse emotions which hinder a person's
spiritual development. By occasionally restraining himself from these entertainments,
a person will make progress towards overcoming his weaknesses and exercise greater
control over himself. However, Buddhists do not condemn these entertainments.
Observance of precepts (both the Five and Eight precepts) when performed with
an earnest mind is certainly a meritorious act. It brings great benefits to this
life and the lives hereafter. Therefore, a person should try his best to observe
the precepts with understanding and as often as he can.
Loving-Kindness
What is lacking in the world today is loving-kindness
or goodwill.
In the world today, there is sufficient material wealth. There
are very advanced intellectuals, brilliant writers, talented speaker, philosophers,
psychologists, scientists, religious advisors, wonderful poets and powerful world
leaders. In spite of these intellectuals, there is no real peace and security
in the world today. Something must be lacking. What is lacking is loving-kindness
or goodwill amongst mankind.
Material gain in itself can never bring lasting
happiness and peace. Peace must first be established in man's own heart before
he can bring peace to others and to the world at large. The real way to achieve
peace is to follow the advice given by religious teachers.
In order to practise
loving-kindness, one must first practise the Noble Principle of non-violence and
must always be ready to overcome selfishness and to show the correct path to others.
The fighting is not to be done with the physical body, because the wickedness
of man is not in his body but in his mind. Non-violence is a more effective weapon
to fight against evil than retaliation. The very nature of retaliation is to increase
wickedness.
In order to practise loving-kindness, one must also be free from
selfishness. Much of the love in this world of self-centered, only a love of one
is own self:
'Not out of love for the husband loved; but the husband is loved
for love of self. Children are loved by the parents, not out of love for the children,
but for love of self. The gods are loved, not out of love for the gods, but for
love for self. Not out of love is anybody loved, but for love of self are loved.'
Man should learn how to practise selfless love to maintain real peace and
his own salvation. Just as suicide kills physically, selfishness kills spiritual
progress. Loving-kindness in Buddhism is neither emotional or selfish. It is loving-kindness
that radiates through the purified mind after eradicating hatred, jealousy, cruelty,
enmity and grudges. According to the Buddha, Metta _ Loving-kindness is the most
effective method to maintain purity of mind and to purify the mentally polluted
atmosphere.
The word 'love' is used to cover a very wide range of emotions
human beings experience. Emphasis on the base animal lust of one sex for another
has much debased the concept of a feeling of amity towards another being. According
to Buddhism, there are many types of emotions, all of which come under the general
term 'love' First of all, there is selfish love and there is selfless love. One
has selfish love when one is concerned only with the satisfaction to be derived
for oneself without any consideration for the partner's needs or feelings. Jealousy
is usually a symptom of selfish love. Selfless love, on the other hand, is felt
when one person surrenders his whole being for the good of another _parents feel
such love for their children. Usually human beings feel a mixture of both selfless
and selfish love in their relationships with each other. For example, while parents
make enormous sacrifices for their children, they usually expect something in
return.
Another kind of love, but closely related to the above, is brotherly
love or the love between friends. In a sense, this kind of love can also be considered
selfish because the love is limited to particular people and does not encompass
others. In another category we have sexual love, where partners are drawn towards
each other through physical attraction. It is the kind that is most exploited
by modern entertainment and it can cover anything from uncomplicated teenage infatuations
to the most complex of relationships between adults.
On a scale far higher
than these, is Universal Love or Metta. This all-embracing love is the great virtue
expressed by the Buddha. Lord Buddha, for example, renounce His kingdom, family
and pleasures so that He could strive to find a way to release mankind from an
existence of suffering. In order to gain His Enlightenment, he had to struggle
for many countless lives. A lesser being would have been disheartened, but not
the Buddha-elect. It is for this He is called 'The Compassionate One'. The Buddha's
boundless love extended not only to human beings but all living creatures. It
was not emotional or selfish, but a love without frontiers, without discrimination.
Unlike the other kinds of love, Universal love can never end in disappointment
or frustration because it expects no reward. It creates more happiness and satisfaction.
One who cultivates universal love will also cultivate sympathetic joy and equanimity
and he will then have attained to the sublime state.
In this book, The Buddha's
Ancient Path Ven. Piyadassi says:
'Love is an active force. Every act of the
loving one is done with the stainless mind to help, to succor, to cheer, to make
the paths of others easier, smoother and more adapted to the conquest of sorrow,
the winning of the highest bliss.
'The way to develop love is through thinking
out the evils of hate, and the advantages of non-hate; through thinking out according
to actuality, according to karma, that really there is none to hate, that hate
is a foolish way of feeling which breeds more and more darkness, that obstructs
right understanding. Hate restricts; love release. Hatred strangles; love enfranchises.
Hatred brings remorse; love brings peace. Hatred agitates; love quietens, stills,
calms. Hatred divides; love unites. Hatred hardens; love softens. Hatred hinders;
love helps. And thus through a correct study and appreciation of the effects of
hatred and the benefits of love, should one develop love.'
In Metta Sutta,
the Buddha has expounded the nature of love in Buddhism. 'Just as a mother would
protect her only child even at the risk of her own life, even so, let him cultivate
a boundless heart towards all beings. Let his thoughts of boundless love pervade
the whole world, above, below and across without any obstruction, without any
hatred, without any enmity.'
Real Charity
You
perform real charity if you can give freely without expecting anything in return.
The essence of true charity is to give something without expecting anything
in return for the gift. If a person expects some material benefit to arise from
his gift, he is only performing an act of bartering and not charity. A charitable
person should not make other people feel indebted to him or use charity as a way
of exercising control over them. He should not even expect others to be grateful,
for most people are forgetful though not necessarily ungrateful. The act of true
charity is wholesome, has no strings attached, and leaves both the giver and the
recipient free.
The meritorious deed of charity is highly praised by every
religion. Those who have enough to maintain themselves should think of others
and extend their generosity deserving cases. Among people who practise charity,
there are some who give as a means of attracting others into their religion or
creed. Such an act of giving which is performed with the ulterior motive of conversion
cannot really be said to be true charity.
The Buddhism views charity as an
act to reduce personal greed which is an unwholesome mental state which hinders
spiritual progress. A person who is on his way to spiritual growth must try to
reduce his own selfishness and his strong desire for acquiring more and more.
He should reduce his strong attachment to possessions which, if he is not mindful,
can enslave him to greed. What he owns or has should instead be used for the benefit
and happiness of others: his loved ones as well as those who need his help.
When
giving, a person should not perform charity as an act of his body alone, but with
his heart and mind as well. There must be joy in every act of giving. A distinction
can be made between giving as a normal act of generosity and dana. In the normal
act of generosity a person gives out of compassion and kindness when he realizes
that someone else is in need of help, and he is in the position to offer the help.
When a person performs dana, he gives as a means of cultivating charity as a virtue
and of reducing his own selfishness and craving. He exercises wisdom when he recalls
that dana is a very important quality to be practised by every Buddhist, and is
the first perfection (paramita)practised by the Buddha in many of His previous
births in search for Enlightenment. A person performs dana in appreciation of
the great qualities and virtues of the Triple Gem.
There are many things which
a person can give. He can give material things: food for the hungry, and money
and clothes to the poor. He can also give his knowledge, skill, time, energy or
effort to projects that can benefit others. He can provide a sympathetic ear and
good counsel to a friend in trouble. He can restrain himself from killing other
beings, and by so doing perform a gift of life to the helpless beings which would
have otherwise been killed. He can also give a part of his body for the sake of
others, such as donating his blood, eyes, kidney, etc. Some who seek to practise
this virtue or are moved by great compassion or concern for others may also be
prepared to sacrifice their own lives. In His previous births, the Bodhisatta
had many a time given away parts of His body for the sake of others. He had also
given up His life so that others might live, so great was His generosity and compassion.
But the greatest testimony to the Buddha's great compassion is His priceless
gift to humanity?the Dhamma which can liberate all beings from suffering. To the
Buddhist, the highest gift of all is the gift of Dhamma. This gift has great powers
to change a life. When a person receives Dhamma with a pure mind and practices
the Truth with earnestness, he cannot fail to change. He will experience greater
happiness, peace and joy in his heart and mind. If he was once cruel, he becomes
compassionate. If he was once revengeful, he becomes forgiving. Through Dhamma,
the hateful becomes more compassionate, the greedy more generous, and the restless
more serene. When a person has tasted Dhamma, not only will be experience happiness
here and now, but also happiness in the lives hereafter as he journeys to Nibbana.
The Buddhist Attitude to Animal Life
If
we believe that animals were created by someone for men, it would follow that
men were also created for animals since some animals do eat human flesh.
Animals
are said to be conscious only of the present. They live with no concern for the
past or future. Likewise, little children seem to have no notion of the future.
They also live in the present until their faculties of memory and imagination
are developed.
Men possesses the faculty of reasoning. The gap between man
and animal widens only to the extent that man develops his reasoning faculty and
acts accordingly. Buddhists accept that animals not only possesses instinctive
power but also, to a lesser degree, thinking power.
In some respects, animals
are superior to men. Dogs have a keener sense of hearing; insects have a keener
sense of smell; hawks are speedier; eagles can see a greater distance. Undoubtedly,
men are wiser; but men have so much to learn from the ants and bees. Much of the
animal is still in us. But we also have much more: we have the potential of spiritual
development.
Buddhism cannot accept that animals were created by someone for
men; if animals were created for men then it could follow that men were also created
for animals since there are some animals which eat human flesh.
Buddhists
are encouraged to love all living beings and not to restrict their love only to
human beings. They should practise loving kindness towards every living being.
The Buddha's advice is that is not right for us to take away the life of any living
being since every living being has a right to exist. Animals also have fear and
pain as do human beings. It is wrong to take away their lives. We should not misuse
our intelligence and strength to destroy animals even though they may sometimes
be a nuisance to us. Animals need our sympathy. Destroying them is not the only
method to get rid of them. Every living being is contributing something to maintain
this world. It is unfair for us to deprive their living rights.
In his Handbook
of reason, D. Runes says:
'We can hardly speak of morals in relation to creatures
we systematically devour, mostly singed but sometimes raw. There are men and women
who practise horse love, dog love, cat love. But these very same people would
take a deer or a calf by its neck, slit its throat, drink the blood straight away
or in a pudding, and bite off the flesh. And who is to say that a horse they cherish
is nobler than a deer they feed on? Indeed, there are people who eat cats, dogs
and horses but would use a cow only as a work animal.'
Some cry over a little
bird or goldfish that expired; others travel long distances to catch fish on a
nasty hook for food or mere pleasure or shooting birds for fun. Some go into deep
jungle for hunting animals as a game while others spend a lot to keep the same
animals at home as their pets.
Some keep frogs to foretell the weather; others
cut off their legs and fry them. Some tenderly tend birds in gilded cages; others
serve them for breakfast. It is all quite confusing. One thought stands out in
a world where man clubs man for gain or sheer gore, there is hardly time to ponder
over his morals in relation to animals.
Every religion advises us to love
our fellow humans. Some even teach us to love them more if they belong to the
same religion. But Buddhism is supreme in that it teaches u s to show equal care
and compassion for each and every creature in the universe. The destruction of
any creature represents a disturbance of the Universal Order.
The Buddha was
very clear in His teachings against any form of cruelty to any living being. One
day the Buddha saw a man preparing to make a animal sacrifice. On being asked
why he was going to kill innocent animals, the man replied that it was because
it would please the gods. The Buddha then offered Himself as the sacrifice, saying
that if the life of an animal would please the gods then the life of a human being,
more valuable, would please the gods even more.
Man's cruelty towards animals
is another expression of his uncontrolled greed. Today we destroy animals and
deprive them of their natural rights so that we can expend our environments for
our convenience. But we are already beginning to pay the price for this selfish
and cruel act. Our environment is threatened and if we do not take stern measures
for the survival of other creatures, our own existence on this earth may not be
guaranteed. It is true that the existence of certain creatures is a threat to
human existence. But we never consider that human are the greatest threat to every
living being on this earth and in the air whereas the existence of other creatures
is a threat only to certain living beings.
Since every creature contributes
something for the maintenance of the planet and atmosphere, destroying them is
not the solution to overcome our disturbances. We should take other measures to
maintain the balance of nature.
The Need for Tolerance Today
'If
a person foolishly does me wrong, I will return to him the protection of my boundless
love. The more evil that comes from him the more good will go from me. I will
always give off only the fragrance of goodness.' (Buddha).
People today are
restless, weary filled with fear and discontentment. They are intoxicated with
the desire to gain fame, wealth and power. They crave for gratification of the
senses. People are passing their days in fear, suspicion and insecurity. In this
time of turmoil and crisis, it becomes difficult for people to coexist peacefully
with their fellowmen. There is therefore, a great need for tolerance in the world
today so that peaceful co-existence among the people of the world can be possible.
The world has bled and suffered from the disease of dogmatism and of intolerance.
The land of many countries today are soaked with the blood spilled on the altar
of various political struggles, as the skies of earlier millennia were covered
with the smoke of burning martyrs of various faiths. Whether in religion or politics
people have been conscious of a mission to bring humanity to their way of life
and have been aggressive towards other ways of life. Indeed, the intolerance of
the crusading spirit has spoiled the records of religions.
Let us look back
on this present century of highly publicized 'Progress'----a century of gadgets
and inventions. The array of new scientific and technical inventions is dazzling
_telephones, electric motors, airplanes, radios, television, computers, space
ships, satellites and electronic devices?. Yet in this same century the children
of the earth who have developed all these inventions as the ultimate in progress,
are the same people who have butchered millions of others by bayonets or bullets
or gas. Amidst all the great 'progress', where does the spirit of tolerance stand?
Today man is interested in exploring outer space. But he is totally unable
to live as man-to-man in peace and harmony. Man will eventually desecrate the
moon and other planets.
For the sake of material gain, modern man violates
nature. His mental activities are so preoccupied with his pleasure that he is
unable to discover the purpose of life. This unnatural behavior of present mankind
is the result of his wrong conception of human life and its ultimate aim. It is
the cause of the frustration, fear, insecurity and intolerance of our present
time.
In fact, today intolerance is still practised in the name of religion.
People merely talk of religion and promise to provide short cuts to paradise,
they are not interested in practising it. If Christianity live by the Sermon on
the Mount, if Buddhists follow the Noble Eightfold path, if Muslims really follow
the concept of Brotherhood and if the Hindus shape their life in oneness, definitely
there will be peace and harmony in this world. Inspite of these invaluable Teachings
of the great religious teachers, people have still not realized the value of tolerance.
The intolerance that is practised in the name of religion is most disgraceful
and deplorable.
The Buddha's advice is 'Let us live happily, not hating those
who hate us. Among those who hate us, let us live free from hatred. Let us live
happily and free from ailment. Let us live happily and be free from greed; among
those who are greedy.'
(Dhammapada 197,200)
Buddhist Funeral Rites
A real Buddhist funeral is a simple, solemn and
dignified religious service.
Religious Day
As practised in many Buddhist
countries, a real Buddhist funeral is a simple, solemn and dignified ceremony.
Unfortunately, some people have included many unnecessary, extraneous items and
superstitious practices into the funeral rites. The extraneous items and practices
vary according to the traditions and customs of the people. They were introduced
in olden days by people who probably could not understand the nature of life,
nature of death, and what life would be after death. When such ideas were incorporated
into Buddhist practices, people tended to blame Buddhism for expensive funeral
rites. If only the Buddhist public would approach proper persons who have studied
the real Teachings of the Buddha and Buddhist tradition, they could receive advice
on how to perform Buddhist funeral rites. It is most unfortunate that a bad impression
has been created that Buddhism encourages people to waste their money and time
on unnecessary practices. It must be clearly understood that Buddhism has nothing
to do with such debased practices.
Buddhists are not very particular regarding
the burial or cremation of a dead body. In many Buddhist countries, cremation
is customary. For hygienic and economic reasons, it is advisable to cremate. Today,
the population in the world is increasing and if we continue to have dead bodies
occupying valuable land, then one day all remaining available land will be occupied
by the dead and the living will have no place to live.
There are still some
people who object to the cremation of dead bodies. They say that cremation is
against god's law, in the same way they have objected to many other things in
the past. It will take some time for such people to understand that cremation
is much more appropriate and effective than burial.
On the other hand Buddhists
do not believe that one day someone will come and awaken the departed persons
spirits from their graveyards or the ashes from their urns and decide who should
go to heaven and who should go to hell.
The consciousness or mental energy
of the departed person has no connection with the body left behind or his skeleton
or his ashes. Many people believe that if the deceased is not given a proper burial
or if a sanctified tombstone is not placed on the grave, then the soul of the
deceased will wander to the four corners of the world and weep and wail and sometimes
even return to disturb the relatives. Such a belief cannot be found anywhere in
Buddhism.
Buddhists believe that when a person dies, rebirth will take place
somewhere else according to his good or bad actions. As long as the person possesses
the craving for existence, he must experience rebirth. Only the Arahants, who
have gone beyond all passions will have no more rebirths and so after their death,
they will attain their final goal Nibbana.
Chapter
9
Dhamma And Ourselves As Refuge
Why We take Refuge in the Buddha
Buddhists
take refuge in the Buddha not out of fear of Him, but to gain inspiration and
right understanding for their self-purification.
Buddhist do not take refuge
in the Buddha with the belief that He is a god or son of god. The Buddha never
claimed any divinity. He was the Enlightened One, the most Compassionate, Wise,
and Holy One who ever lived in this world. Therefore, people take refuge in the
Buddha as a Teacher or Master who has shown the real path of emancipation. They
pay homage to Him to show their gratitude and respect, but they do not ask for
material favors. Buddhists do not pray to the Buddha thinking that He is a god
who will reward them or punish or curse them. They recite verses or some sutras
not in the sense of supplication but as a means of recalling His great virtues
and good qualities to get more inspiration and guidance for themselves and to
develop the confidence to follow His Teachings. There are critics who condemn
this attitude of taking refuge in the Buddha. They do not know the true meaning
of the concept of taking refuge in and paying homage to a great religious Teacher.
They have learned only about praying which is the only thing that some people
do in the name of religion. When Buddhists seek refuge it means they accept the
Buddha, Dhamma and the Sangha as the means by which they can eradicate all the
causes of their fear and other mental disturbances. Many people, especially those
with animistic beliefs, seek protection in certain objects around them which they
believe are inhabited by spirits.
The Buddha advised against the futility
of taking refuge in hills, woods, groves, trees and shrines when people are fear-stricken.
No such refuge is safe, no such refuge is Supreme. Not by resorting to such a
refuge is one freed from all ill. He who has gone for refuge to the Buddha, the
Dhamma and the Sangha sees with right knowledge the Four Noble Truths -Sorrow,
the cause of Sorrow, the transcending of Sorrow, and the Noble Eightfold Path
which leads to the cessation of Sorrow. This indeed is secure refuge. By seeking
such refuge one is released from all Sorrow.
(Dhammapada 188-192)
In the Dhajagga Sutta, itis mentioned that
by taking refuge in Sakra, the king of gods or any god, the followers would not
be free from all their worldly problems and fears. The reason is, such gods are
themselves not free from lust, hatred, illusion and fear, but the Buddha, Dhamma
and the Sangha (i.e. the community who has attained perfection) are free from
them. Only those who are free from unsatisfactoriness can show the way to lasting
happiness.
Francis Story, a well known Buddhist scholar, gives his views on
seeking refuge in the Buddha.
'I go for refuge to the Buddha. I seek the presence
of the Exalted Teacher by whose compassion I may be guided through the torrents
of Samsara, by whose serene countenance I may be uplifted from the mire of worldly
thoughts and cravings, seeing there in the very assurance of Nibbanic Peace, which
He himself attained. In sorrow and pain I turn to Him and in my happiness I seek
His tranquil gaze. I lay before His Image not only flowers and incense, but also
the burning fires of my restless heart, that they may be quenched and stilled,
I lay down the burden of my pride and my selfhood, the heavy burden of my cares
and aspirations, the weary load of this incessant birth and death.
Sri Rama
Chandra Bharati, an Indian poet, gives another meaningful explanation for taking
refuge in the Buddha.
'I seek not thy refuge for the sake of gain,
Not
fear of thee, nor for the love of fame,
Not as thou hailest from the solar
race,
Not for the sake of gaining knowledge vast,
But drawn by the power
of the boundless love,
And thy all-embracing peerless ken,
The vast Samsara's
sea safe to cross,
I bend low, O lord, and become thy devotee.'
Some people
say that since the Buddha was only a man, there is no meaning in taking refuge
in Him. But they do not know that although the Buddha very clearly said that He
was a man, he was no ordinary man like any of us. He was an extraordinary and
incomparably holy person who possessed Supreme Enlightenment and great compassion
toward every living being. He was a man freed from all human weaknesses, defilements
and even from ordinary human emotions. Of Him it has been said, 'There is none
so godless as the Buddha, and yet none so godlike.' In the Buddha is embodied
all the great virtues, sacredness, wisdom and enlightenment.
Another question
that people very often raise is this: 'If the Buddha is not a god, if He is not
living in this world today, how can he bless people?' According to the Buddha,
if people follow His advice by leading a religious life, they would certainly
receive blessings. Blessing in a Buddhist sense means the joy we experience when
we develop confidence and satisfaction. The Buddha once said, 'if anyone wishes
to see me, he should look at my Teachings and practise them.' (Samyutta Nikaya)
Those who understand His Teachings easily see the real nature of the Buddha reflected
in themselves. The image of the Buddha they maintain in their minds is more real
than the image they see on the altar, which is merely a symbolic representation.
'Those who live in accordance with the Dhamma (righteous way of life) will be
protected by that very Dhamma.' (Thera Gatha) One who knows the real nature of
existence and the fact of life through Dhamma will not have any fear and secure
a harmonious way of life.
In other religions, the people worship their god
by asking for favours to be granted to them. Buddhists do not worship the Buddha
by asking for worldly favours, but they respect Him for His supreme achievement.
When Buddhists respect the Buddha, they are indirectly elevating their own minds
so that one day they also can get the same enlightenment to serve mankind if they
aspire to become a Buddha.
Buddhists respect the Buddha as their Master. However,
this respect does not imply an attachment to or a dependence on the Teacher. This
kind of respect is in accordance with His Teaching which is as follows:
'Monks,
even if a monk should take hold of the edge of my outer garment and should walk
close behind me, step for step, yet if he should be covetous, strongly attracted
by pleasures of the senses, malevolent in thought, of corrupt mind and purpose,
of confused recollection, inattentive and not contemplative, scatter-brained,
his sense-faculties uncontrolled, then he is far from me and I am far from him.'
'Monks, if the monk should be staying even a hundred miles away, yet he is
not covetous, not strongly attracted by the pleasures of the senses, not malevolent
in thought, not of corrupt mind and purpose, his collection firmly set, attentive,
contemplative, his thoughts be one-pointed, restrained in his sense-faculties,
then he is near me and I am near him.' (Samyutta Nikaya)
No Self Surrender
Dependence on others
means a surrender of one's effortand self-confidence.
Buddhism is a gentle
religion where equality, justice and peace reign supreme. To depend on others
for salvation is negative, but to depend on oneself is positive. Dependence on
others means surrendering one's intelligence and efforts.
Everything which
has improved and uplifted humanity has been done by man himself. Man's improvement
must come from hi own knowledge, understanding, effort and experience and not
from heaven. Man should not be a slave even to the great forces of nature because
even though he is crushed by them he remains superior by virtue of his understanding
of them. Buddhism carries the Truth further: it shows that by means of understanding,
man can also control his environment and circumstances. He can cease to be crushed
by them and use their power to raise himself to great heights of spirituality
and nobility.
Buddhism gives due credit to man's intelligence and effort for
his achievements rather than to supernatural beings. True religion means faith
in the good of man rather than faith in unknown forces. In that respect, Buddhism
is not merely a religion, but a noble method to gain peace and eternal salvation
through living a respectable way of life. From the very outset, Buddhism appeals
to the cultured and the intellectual minds. Every cultured man in the world today
respects the Buddha as a rational Teacher. The Buddha taught that what man needs
for his happiness is not a religion with a mass of dogmas and theories but knowledge
of the cosmic nature and its relationship to the law of cause and effect. Until
this principle that life is merely an imperfect manifestation of nature is fully
understood, no man can be fully emancipated.
The Buddha has given a new explanation
of the universe. It is a new vision of eternal happiness, the achievement of perfection.
The winning of the human goal in Buddhism is the permanent state beyond impermanency,
the attainment of Nibbana beyond all the worlds of change, and the final deliverance
form the miseries of existence.
No Sinners
In Buddhism, actions are
merely termed as unskillful or unwholesome, not as sinful.
Buddhists do not
regard man as sinful by nature of 'in rebellion against god'. Every human being
is a person of great worth who has within himself a vast store of good as well
as evil habits. The good in a person is always waiting for a suitable opportunity
to flower and to ripen. Remember the saying, 'There is so much that is good in
the worst of us and so much that is bad in the best of us.'
Buddhism teaches
that everyone is responsible for his own good and bad deeds, and that each individual
can mould his own destiny. Says the Buddha, 'These evil deeds were only done by
you, not by your parents, friends, or relatives; and you yourself will reap the
painful results.'(Dhammapada 165)
Man's sorrow is his own making and is not
handed down by a family curse or an original sin of a mythical primeval ancestor.
Buddhists do not accept the belief that this world is merely a place of trial
and testing. This world can be made a place where we can attain the highest perfection.
And perfection is synonymous with happiness. To the Buddha, man is not an experiment
in life created by somebody which can be done away with when unwanted. If a sin
could be forgiven, people might take advantage and commit more and more sins.
The Buddhist has no reason to believe that the sinner can escape the consequences
by the grace of an external power. If a man thrusts his hand into a furnace, his
hand will be burnt, and all the prayer in the world will not remove the scars.
The same is with the man who walks into the fires of evil action. The Buddha's
approach to the problems of suffering is not imaginary, speculative or metaphysical,
but essentially empirical.
According to Buddhism, there is no such thing as
sin as explained by other religions. To the Buddhists, sin is unskillful or unwholesome
action?Akusala Kamma which creates Papa?the downfall of man. The wicked man is
an ignorant man. He needs instruction more than he needs punishment and condemnation.
He is not regarded as violating god's will or as a person who must beg for divine
mercy and forgiveness. He needs only guidance for his enlightenment.
All that
is necessary is for someone to help him use his reason to realize that he is responsible
for his wrong action and that he must pay for the consequences. Therefore the
belief in confession is foreign to Buddhism.
The purpose of the Buddha's appearance
in this world is not to wash away the sins committed by human beings nor to punish
or to destroy the wicked people, but to make the people understand how foolish
it is to commit evil and to point out the reaction of such evil deeds. Consequently
there are no commandments in Buddhism, since no one can command another for his
spiritual upliftment. The Buddha has encouraged us to develop and use our understanding.
He has shown us the path for our liberation from suffering. The precepts that
we undertake to observe are not commandments: they are observed voluntarily. The
Buddha's Teaching is thus: 'Please pay attention; take this advice and think it
over. If you think it is suitable for you to practise my advice, then try to practise
it. You can see the results through your own experience.' There is no religious
value in blindly observing any commandment without proper conviction and understanding.
However, we should not take advantage of the liberty given by the Buddha to do
anything we like. It is our duty to behave as cultured, civilized and understanding
human beings to lead a religious life. If we can understand this, commandments
are not important. As an enlightened teacher, the Buddha advised us on how to
lead a pure life without imposing commandments and using the fear of punishment.
Do It Yourself
Self confidence plays an important part in every
aspect of man's life.
Knowing that no external sources, no faith or rituals
can save him, the Buddhist feels the need to rely on his own efforts. He gains
confidence through self-reliance. He realizes that the whole responsibility of
his present life as well as his future life depends completely on himself alone.
Each must seek salvation for himself. Achieving salvation can be compared to curing
a disease: if one is ill, one must go to a doctor. The doctor diagnose the ailment
and prescribes medicine. The medicine must be taken by the person himself. He
cannot depute someone else to take the medicine for him. No one can be cured by
simply admiring the medicine or just praising the doctor for his good prescription.
In order to be cured, he himself must faithfully follow the instructions given
by the doctor with regard to the manner and frequency in taking his medicine,
his daily diet and other relevant medical restraints. Likewise, a person must
follow the precepts, instructions or advice given by the Buddha (who gives prescriptions
for liberation)by controlling or subduing one's greed, hatred and ignorance. No
one can find salvation by simply singing praises of the Buddha or by making offerings
to Him. Neither can one find salvation by celebrating certain important occasions
in honour of the Buddha. Buddhism is not a religion where people can attain salvation
by mere prayer or begging to be saved. They must strive hard by controlling their
selfish desires and emotions in order to gain salvation.
Man is Responsible
for Everything
When a man has
learned how to live as a real human being without disturbing others, he can live
peacefully without any fear in his heart.
According to the Buddha, man himself
is the maker of his own destiny. He has none to blame for his lot since he alone
is responsible for his own life. He makes his own life for better or for worse.
The Buddha says: man creates everything. All our griefs, perils and misfortunes
are of our own creation. We spring from no other source than our own imperfection
of heart and mind. We are the results of our good and bad actions committed in
the past under the influence of greed and delusion. And since we ourselves brought
them into being, it is within our power to overcome bad effects and cultivate
good natures.
The human mind, like that of an animal, is something governed
by animal instinct. But unlike the animal mind, the human mind can be trained
for higher values. If man's mind is not properly cultured, that uncultured mind
creates a great deal of trouble in this world. Sometimes man's behavior is more
harmful and more dangerous than animal behavior. Animals have no religious problems,
no language problems, no political problems, no social and ethical problems, no
colour-bar problems. They fight only for their food, shelter and sex. But, there
are thousand of problems created by mankind. Their behavior is such that they
would not be able to solve any of these problems without creating further problems.
Man is reluctant to admit his weaknesses. He is not willing to shoulder his responsibilities.
His attitude is always to blame others for his failure. If we become more responsible
in our actions, we can maintain peace and happiness.
Man
is His Own Jailor
Is there
any truth in man'sclaim that he should be given freedom to do things as he likes?
When we consider human freedom, it is very difficult to find out whether man
is really free to do anything according to his own wishes. Man is bound by many
conditions both external and internal; he is asked to obey the laws that are imposed
on him by the government; he is bound to follow certain religious principles;
he is required to co-operate with the moral and social conditions of the society
in which he lives; he is compelled to follow certain national and family customs
and traditions. In modern society, he in inclined to disagree with life; he is
expected to conform by adapting himself to the modern way of life. he is bound
to co-operate with natural laws and cosmic energy, because he is also part of
the same energy. He is subjected to the weather and climatic conditions of the
region. Not only does he have to pay attention to his life or to physical elements,
but he has also to make up his mind to control his own emotions. In other words,
he has no freedom to think freely because he is overwhelmed by new thoughts which
may contradict or do away with his previous thoughts and convictions. At the same
time, he may believe that he has to obey and work according to the will of god,
and not follow his own free-will.
Taking into consideration all the above
changing conditions to which man is bound, we can ask 'Is there any truth in man's
claim that he should be given freedom to do things as he likes?'
Why does
man have his hands tied so firmly? The reason is that there are various bad elements
within man. These elements are dangerous and harmful to all living creatures.
For the past few thousand years, all religions have been trying to tame this unreliable
attitude of man and to teach him how to live a noble life. But it is most unfortunate
that man is still not ready to be trustworthy, however good he may appear to be.
Man still continues to harbor all these evil elements within himself. These
evil elements are not introduced or influenced by external sources but are created
by man himself. If these evil forces are man-made, then man himself must work
hard to get rid of them after realizing their danger. Unfortunately the majority
of men are cruel, cunning, wicked, ungrateful, unreliable, unscrupulous. If man
is allowed to live according to his own free-will without moderation and restraint,
he would most definitely violate the peace and happiness of innocent people. His
behavior would probably be much worse than that of dangerous living beings. Religion
is required to train him to lead a respectable life and to gain peace and happiness
here and hereafter.
Another obstacle confronting religious life and spiritual
progress is racial arrogance. The Buddha advised His followers not to bring forward
any racial issue when they come to practise religion. Buddhists are taught to
sink their own racial origin and caste or class distinction. People of all religions
should not discriminate against any groups of people by bringing forward their
personal traditional way of life. They should treat everyone equally, especially
in the religious field. Unfortunately, followers of different religions create
more discriminations and hostility towards other religious groups when performing
their religious activities.
While working others, they should not disturb
their feelings because of their so-called traditions and customs. They can follow
traditions and customs that are in keeping with the religious principles and moral
codes of their religions.
Racial arrogance is a great hindrance to religion
and spiritual progress. The Buddha once used the simile of ocean water to illustrate
the harmony which can be experienced by people who have learnt to cast aside their
racial arrogance: Different rivers have different names. The water of the individual
rivers all flow into the ocean and become ocean water. In a similar manner, all
those who have come from different communities and different castes, must forget
their differences and think of themselves only as human beings.
You Protect Yourself
'Protecting
oneself one protects others'
'Protecting others one protects oneself.'
Once
the Blessed One told His monks the following story:
'There was once a pair
of jugglers who did their acrobatic feats on a bamboo pole. One day the master
said to his apprentice: 'Now get on my shoulders and climb up the bamboo pole.'
When the apprentice had done so, the master said: 'Now protect me well and I shall
protect you. By watching each other in that way, we shall be able to show our
skill, we shall make a good profit and you can get down safely from the bamboo
pole.' But the apprentice said: 'Not so, master. You! O Master, should protect
yourself, and I too shall protect myself. Thus self-protected and self-guarded
we shall safely do our feats."
'This is the right way,' said the Blessed
One and spoke further as follows:
'It is just as the apprentice said: 'I shall
protect myself,' in that way the Foundation of Mindfulness should be practised.
'I shall protect others,' in that way the Foundation of Mindfulness should be
practised. Protecting oneself one protects others; protecting others one protects
oneself.
'And how does one, in protecting oneself, protect others? By the
repeated and frequent practice of meditation.
'and how does one, by protecting
others, protect oneself? By patience and forbearance, by a non-violent and harmless
life, by loving kindness and compassion.' (Satipatthana, Samyutta, No:19)
'Protecting
oneself one protects others'
'Protecting others one protects oneself'
These
two sentences supplement each other and should not be taken (or quoted) separately.
Nowadays, when social service is so greatly stressed, people may for instance,
be tempted to quote, in support of their ideas, only the second sentence. But
any such one-sided quotation would misrepresent the Buddha's statement. It has
to be remembered that, in our story the Buddha expressly approved the words of
the apprentice, which is that one has first to carefully watch one's own steps
if one wishes to protect others from harm. He who is sunk in the mire himself
cannot help others out of it. In that sense, self-protection is not selfish protection.
It is the cultivation of self-control, and ethical and spiritual self-development.
Protecting oneself one protects others?the truth of this statement begins
at a very simple and practical level. At the material level, this truth is so
self-evident that we need not say more than a few words about it. It is obvious
that the protection of our own health will go far in protecting the health of
our closer or wider environment, especially where contagious diseases are concerned.
Caution and circumspection in all our doings and movements will protect others
from harm that may come to them through our carelessness and negligence. By careful
driving, abstention from alcohol, by self-restraint in situations that might lead
to violence?in all these and many other ways we shall protect others by protecting
ourselves.
We come now to the ethical level of that truth. Moral self-protection
will safeguard others, individual and society, against our own unrestrained passions
and selfish impulses. If we permit the Three Roots of everything evil, Greed,
Hate and Delusion, to take a firm hold in our hearts, then that which grows from
those evil roots will spread around like the jungle creeper which suffocates and
kills the healthy and noble growth. But if we protect ourselves against these
Three Roots of Evil, fellow beings too will be safe from our reckless greed for
possession and power, from our unrestrained lust and sensuality, from our envy
and jealousy. They will be safe from the disruptive, or even destructive and murderous,
consequences of our hate and enmity, from the outburst of our anger, from our
spreading an atmosphere of antagonism and quarrelsomeness which may make life
unbearable for those around us. But the harmful effects of our greed and hate
on others are not limited to cases when they become the passive objects or victims
of our hate, or their possession the object of our greed. Greed and hate have
an infectious power, which can multiply the evil effects. If we ourselves think
of nothing else than to crave and grasp, to acquire and possess, to hold and cling,
then we may rouse or strengthen these possessive instincts in others too. Our
bad example may become the standard of behavior of our environment for instance
among our own children, our colleagues, and so on. Our own conduct may induce
others to join us in the common satisfaction of rapacious desires; or we may arouse
feelings of resentment and competitiveness in others who wish to beat us in the
race. If we are full of sensuality we may kindle the fire of lust in others. Our
own hate may cause the hate and vengeance of others. It may also happen that we
ally ourselves with others or instigate them to common acts of hate and enmity.
How to Save Yourself
Oneself,
indeed, is one'ssavior, for what other savior would there be?
With oneself
well controlled the problem of looking for external savior is solved, (Dhammapada
166)
As the Buddha was about to pass away, His disciples came from everywhere
to be near Him. While the other disciples were constantly at His side and in deep
sorrow over the expected loss of their Master, a monk named Attadatta went into
his cell and practised meditation. The other monks, thinking that he was unconcerned
about the welfare of the Buddha, were upset and reported the matter to Him. The
monk, however, addressed the Buddha thus, 'Lord as the Blessed One would be passing
away soon, I thought the best way to honour the Blessed One would be by attaining
Arahantship during the lifetime of the Blessed One itself.' The Buddha was pleased
by his attitude and his conduct and said that one's spiritual welfare should not
be abandoned for the sake of others.
In this story is illustrated one of the
most important aspects of Buddhism. A person must constantly be on the alert to
seek his own deliverance from Samsara, and his 'salvation' must be brought about
by the individual himself. He cannot look to any external force or agency to help
him to attain Nibbana.
People who do not understand Buddhism criticize this
concept and say that Buddhism is a selfish religion which only talks about the
concern for one's own freedom from pain and sorrow. This is not true at all. The
Buddha states clearly that one should work ceaselessly for the spiritual and material
welfare of all beings, while at the same time diligently pursuing one's own goal
of attaining Nibbana. Selfless service is highly commended by the Buddha.
Again,
people who do not understand Buddhism may ask, 'It may be all right for the fortunate
human beings, in full command of their mental powers, to seek Nibbana by their
own efforts. But what about those who are mentally and physically or even materially
handicapped? How can they be self-reliant? Do they not need the help of some external
force, some god or deva to assist them?
The answer to this is that Buddhists
do not believe that the final release must necessarily take place in one life
time. The process can take a long time, over the period of many births. One has
to apply oneself, to the best of one's ability, and slowly develop the powers
of self reliance. Therefore, even those who are handicapped mentally, spiritually
and materially must make an effort, however small, to begin the process of deliverance.
Once the wheels are set in motion, the individual slowly trains himself to
improve his powers of self-reliance. The tiny acorn will one day grow into a mighty
oak, but not overnight. Patience is an essential ingredient in this difficult
process.
For example, we know from experience how many parents do everything
in their power to bring up their children according to the parents' hopes and
aspirations. And yet when these children grow up, they develop in their own way,
not necessarily the way the parents wanted them to be. In Buddhism, we believe
that while others can exert an influence on someone's life, the individual will
in the end create his own kamma and be responsible for his own actions. No human
being or deva can, in the final analysis, direct or control an individual's attainment
of 'the ultimate salvation'. This is the meaning of self-reliance.
This does
not mean that Buddhism teaches one to be selfish. In Buddhism, when someone seeks,
by his own effort, to attain Nibbana, he is determined not to kill, steal, tell
lies, lust after others, or lose the control of his senses through intoxication.
When he controls himself thus he automatically contributes to the happiness of
others. So is not this so-called 'selfishness' a good thing for the general welfare
of others?
On a more mundane level it has been asked how the lower forms of
life can extricate themselves from a mere meaningless round of existence. Surely
in that helpless state some benevolent external force is necessary to pull the
unfortunate being from the quicksand. To answer this question we must refer to
our knowledge of the evolution theory. It is clearly stated that life begin in
very primitive forms?no more than a single cell floating in the water. Over millions
of years these basic life forms evolved and became more complex, more intelligent.
It is at this more intelligent level that life forms are capable of organization,
independent thought, conceptualization and so on.
When Buddhists talk about
the ability to save oneself, they are referring to life forms at this higher level
of mental development. In the earlier stages of evolution kammic and mental forces
remain dormant, but over countless rebirths, a being raises itself to the level
of independent thought and becomes capable of rational rather than instinctive
behavior. It is at this state that the being becomes aware of the meaninglessness
of undergoing endless rebirths with its natural concomitants of pain and sorrow.
It is then that the being is capable of making its determination to end rebirth
and seek happiness by gaining enlightenment and Nibbana. With this high level
of intelligence, the individual is indeed capable of self-improvement and self-development.
We all know human beings are born with very varying levels of intelligence
and powers of reasoning. Some are born as geniuses, while at the other end of
the spectrum, others are born with very low intelligence. Yet every being has
some ability to distinguish between choices or options, especially when they concern
survival. If we extend this fact of survival even to the animal world we can distinguish
between higher and lower animals, with this same ability (in varying degrees of
course) to make choices for the sake of survival.
Hence, even a lower form
of life has the potential to create a good kamma, however limited its scope. With
the diligent application of this and the gradual increase of good kamma a being
can raise itself to higher levels of existence and understanding.
To look
at this problem from another angle, we can consider one of the earliest stories
that have been told to show how the Buddha-to-be first made the initial decision
to strive for Enlightenment. A great many rebirths before the Buddha was born
as Siddharta, he was born as an ordinary man.
One day while traveling in a
boat with his mother, a great storm arose and the boat capsized, throwing the
occupants into the angry sea. With no thought for his personal safety, the future
Buddha carried his mother on his back and struggled to swim to dry land. But so
great was the expanse of water ahead of him that he did not know the best route
to safety. When he was in this dilemma, not knowing which way to turn, his bravery
was noticed by one of the devas. This deva could not physically come to his aid,
but he was able to make the future Buddha know the best route to take. The young
man listened to the deva and both he and his mother were saved. There and then
he made a firm determination not to rest until he had finally gained Enlightenment.
This story illustrates the fact that Buddhists can and do seek the help of
devas in their daily life. A deva is a being who by virtue of having acquired
great merit (like the king of the devas) is born with the power to help other
beings. But this power is limited to material and physical things. In our daily
existence, we can seek help of the devas (when misfortune strikes, when we need
to be comforted, when we are sick or afraid, and so on).
The fact that we
seek the aid of these devas means that we are still tied to the material world.
We must accept the fact that by being born we are subject to physical desires
and needs. And it is not wrong to satisfy these needs on a limited scale. When
the Buddha advocated the Middle Path, He said that we should neither indulge ourselves
in luxury nor completely deny ourselves the basic necessities of life.
However,
we should not stop at that. While we accept the conditions of our birth, we must
also make every effort, by following the Noble Eightfold Path, to reach a level
of development where we realize that attachment to the material world creates
only pain and sorrow.
As we develop our understanding over countless births,
we crave less and less for the pleasures of the senses. It is at the stage that
we become truly self-reliant. At this stage, the devas cannot help us anymore,
because we are not seeking to satisfy our material needs.
A Buddhist who really
understands the fleeting nature of the world practises detachment from material
goods. He is not unduly attached to worldly goods. Therefore he shares these goods
freely with those who are more unfortunate than he is?he practises generosity.
In this way again a Buddhist contributes to the welfare of others.
When the
Buddha gained Enlightenment as a result of His own efforts, He did not selfishly
keep this knowledge to Himself. Rather, He spent no less than forty five years
imparting His knowledge not only to men and women but even to the devas. This
is Buddhism's supreme example of selflessness and concern for the well-being of
all living things.
It is often said that the Buddha helped devotees who were
in trouble not through the performance of miracles such as restoring the dead
to life and so on, but through His acts of wisdom and compassion.
In one instance,
a woman named Kisa Gotami went to seek the help of the Buddha in restoring her
dead child to life. Knowing that He could not reason with her as she was so distressed
and overwhelmed with grief, the Buddha told her that she should first obtain a
handful of mustard seeds from a person who had never lost a dear one through death.
The distracted woman ran from house to house and while everyone was only too willing
to give her the mustard seeds, no one could honestly say that he or she had not
lost a dear one through death. Slowly, Kisa Gotami came to the realization that
death is a natural occurrence to be experienced by any being that is born. Filled
with this realization she returned to the Buddha and thanked Him for showing her
the truth about death.
Now, the point here is that the Buddha was more concerned
with the woman's understanding about the nature of life than giving her temporary
relief by restoring her child to life?the child would have grown old and still
have died. With her greater realization Kisa Gotami was able not only to come
to terms with the phenomenon of death but also to learn about the cause of sorrow
through attachment. She was able to realize that attachment causes sorrow, that
when attachment is destroyed, then sorrow is also destroyed.
Therefore in
Buddhism, a person can seek the help of external agencies (like devas)in the pursuit
of temporal happiness, but in the later stages of development when attachment
to the worldly conditions ceases, there begins the path towards renunciation and
enlightenment for which one must stand alone. When a man seeks to gain liberation,
to break away from the endless cycle of birth and death, to gain realization and
enlightenment, he can only do this by his own efforts, by his own concentrated
will power.
Buddhism gives great dignity to man. It is the only religion which
states that a human being has the power to help and free himself. In the later
stages of his development, he is not at the mercy of any external force or agency
which he must constantly please by worshipping or offering sacrifices.
Chapter
10
Prayer, Meditation and Religious Practices
Faith, Confidence and
Devotion
Right understanding points the way to confidence; confidence paves
the way to wisdom.
Faith in the theistic sense is not found in Buddhism because
of its emphasis on understanding. Theistic faith is a drug for the emotional mind
and demands belief in things which cannot be known. Knowledge destroys faith and
faith destroys itself when a mysterious belief is examined under the daylight
of reason. Confidence cannot be obtained by faith since it places less emphasis
on reason, but only by understanding.
Referring to the unintelligible and
'blind'nature of faith, Voltaire said, 'Faith is to believe in something which
your reason tells you cannot be true; for if your reason approved of it, there
could be no question of blind faith.'
Confidence, however, is not the same
as faith. For confidence is not a mental acceptance of that which cannot be known.
Confidence is an assured expectation, not of an unknown beyond, but of what can
be tested as experienced and understood personally. Confidence is like the understanding
that a student has in his teacher who explains in the class-room the inverse square
law of gravitation as stated by Newton. He should not adopt an unquestioning belief
of his teacher and his textbook. He studies the fact, examines the scientific
arguments, and makes an assessment of the reliability of the information. If he
has doubts, he should reserve his judgment until such time as when he is able
to investigate the accuracy of the information for himself. To a Buddhist, confidence
is a product of reason, knowledge and experience. When it is developed, confidence
can never be blind faith. Confidence becomes a power of the mind.
In his book,
What The Buddha Taught Walpola Rahula says:
'The question of belief arises
when there is no seeing?seeing in every sense of the word. The moment you see,
the question of belief disappears. If I tell you that I have a gem hidden in the
folded palm of my hand, the question of belief arises because you do not see it
yourself. But if I unclench my fist and show you the gem, then you see it for
yourself, and the question of belief does not arise. So the phrase in ancient
Buddhist texts reads:' Realizing, as one sees a gem(or a myrobalan fruit) in the
palm'.'
The Meaning of Prayer
Nature is impartial; it cannot be flattered by
prayers. It does not grant any special favours on request.
Man is not a fallen
creature who begs for his needs as he awaits mercy. According to Buddhism, man
is a potential master of himself. Only because of his deep ignorance does man
fail to realize his full potential. Since the Buddha has shown this hidden power,
man must cultivate his mind and try to develop it by realizing his innate ability.
Buddhism gives full responsibility and dignity to man. It makes man his own
master. According to Buddhism, no higher being sits in judgment over his affairs
and destiny. That is to say, our life, our society, our world, is what you and
I want to make out of it, and not what some other unknown being wants it to be.
Remember that nature is impartial; it cannot be flattered by prayers. Nature
does not grant any special favours on request. Thus in Buddhism, prayer is meditation
which has self-change as its object. Prayer in meditation is the reconditioning
of one's nature. It is the transforming of one's inner nature accomplished by
the purification of the three faculties?thought, word, and deed. Through meditation,
we can understand that 'we become what we think', in accordance with the discoveries
of psychology. When we pray, we experience some relief in our minds; that is,
the psychological effect that we have created through our faith and devotion.
After reciting certain verses we also experience the same result. Religious names
or symbols are important to the extent that they help to develop devotion and
confidence.
The Buddha Himself has clearly expressed that neither the recital
of holy scriptures, nor self-torture, nor sleeping on the ground, nor the repetition
of prayers, penance, hymns, charms, mantras, incantations and invocations can
bring the real happiness of Nibbana.
Regarding the use of prayers for attaining
the final goal, the Buddha once made an analogy of a man who wants to cross a
river. If he sits down and prays imploring that the far bank of the river will
come to him and carry him across, then his prayer will not be answered. If he
really wants to cross the river, he must makes some effort; he must find some
logs and build a raft, or look for a bridge or construct a boat or perhaps swim.
Somehow he must work to get across the river. Likewise, if he wants to cross the
river of Samsara, prayers alone are not enough. He must work hard by living a
religious life, by controlling his passion, calming his mind, and by getting rid
of all the impurities and defilements in his mind. Only then can he reach the
final goal. Prayer alone will never take him to the final goal.
If prayer
is necessary, it should be to strengthen the mind and not to beg for gains. The
following prayer of a well-known poet, teaches us how to pray, Buddhists will
regard this as meditation to cultivate the mind:
'Let me not pray to be sheltered
from danger,
but to be fearless in facing them.
Let me not beg for the
stilling of my pain,
but for the heart to conquer it.
Let me not crave
in anxious fear to be saved,
but for the patience to win my freedom.'
Meditation
Meditation is
the psychological approach to mental culture, training and purification.
In
place of prayer, Buddhist practise meditation for mental culture and for spiritual
development. No one can attain Nibbana or salvation without developing the mind
through meditation. Any amount of meritorious deeds alone will not lead a person
to attain the final goal without the corresponding mental purification. Naturally,
the untrained mind is very elusive and persuades people to commit evil and become
slaves of the senses. Imagination and emotions always mislead man if his mind
is not properly trained. One who knows how to practise meditation will be able
to control one's mind when it is misled by the senses.
Most of the troubles
which we are confronting today are due to the untrained and uncultured mind. It
is already established that meditation is the remedy for many physical and mental
sickness. Medical authorities and great psychologists the world over say that
mental frustration, worries, miseries, anxieties, tension and fear are the causes
of many diseases, stomach ulcers, gastritis, nervous complaints and mental sickness.
And even latent sickness will be aggravated through such mental conditions.
When
the conscious 'I' frets too much, worries too much, or grieves too long and too
intensely, then troubles develop in the body. Gastric ulcers, tuberculosis, coronary
diseases and a host of functional disorders are the products of mental and emotional
imbalance. In the case of children, the decay of the teeth and defective eye-sight
are frequently related to emotional disorders.
Many of these sicknesses and
disorders can be avoided if people could spend a few minutes a day to calm their
senses through the practice of mediation. Many people do not believe this or are
too lazy to practise meditation owing to lack of understanding. Some people say
that mediation is only a waste of time. We must remember that every spiritual
master in this world attained the highest point of his life through the practice
of meditation. They are honored today by millions of people because they have
done tremendous service to mankind with their supreme knowledge and patience which
they obtained through the practice of meditation.
Meditation should not be
a task to which we force ourselves 'with gritted teeth and clenched fists'; it
should rather be something that draws us, because it fills us with joy and inspiration.
So long as we have to force ourselves, we are not yet ready for meditation. Instead
of meditating we are violating our true nature. Instead of relaxing and letting
go, we are holding on to our ego, to our will power. In this way meditation becomes
a game of ambition, of personal achievement and aggrandizement. Meditation is
like love: a spontaneous experience?not something that can be forced or acquired
by strenuous effort.
Therefore Buddhist mediation has no other purpose than
to bring the mind back into the present, into the state of fully awakened consciousness,
by clearing it from all obstacles that have been created by habit or tradition.
The Buddha obtained His Enlightenment through the development of His mind.
He did not seek divine power to help Him. He gained His wisdom through self-effort
by practising meditation. To have a healthy body and mind and to have peace in
life, one must learn how to practise meditation.
Nature
of Modern Life
Today we are living in a world where people have to work very
hard physically and mentally. Without hard work, there is no place for people
in the modern society. Very often keen competition is going on everywhere. One
is trying to beat the other in every sphere of life and man has no rest at all.
Mind is the nucleus of life. When there is no real peace and rest in the mind,
the whole life will collapse. People naturally try to overcome their miseries
through pleasing the senses: they drink, gamble, sing and dance?all the time having
the illusion that they are enjoying he real happiness of life. Sense stimulation
is not the real way to have relaxation. The more we try to please the senses through
sensual pleasures, the more will we become slaves to the senses. There will be
no end to our craving for satisfaction. The real way to relax is to calm the senses
by the control of mind. If we can control the mind, then we will be able to control
everything. When the mind is free from mental disturbances it can see many things
which others cannot see with their naked eyes. Ultimately, we will be able to
attain our salvation and find peace and happiness.
To practise meditation,
one must have strong determination, effort and patience. Immediate results cannot
be expected. We must remember that it takes many years for a person to be qualified
as a doctor, lawyer, mathematician, philosopher, historian or a scientist. Similarly
to be a good meditator, it will take sometime for the person to control the elusive
mind and to calm the senses. Practising meditation is like swimming in a river
against the current. Therefore one must not lose patience for not being able to
obtain rapid results. At the same time the meditator must also cultivate his morality.
A congenial place for meditation is another important aspect. The meditator must
have an object for his meditation, for without an object the jumping mind is not
easy to trap. The object must not create lust, anger, delusion, and emotion in
the meditator's mind.
When we start to meditate, we switch the mind from the
old imaginative way of thinking, or habitual thought into a new unimpeded or unusual
way of thinking. While meditating when we breathe in mindfully, we absorb cosmic
energy. When we breathe out mindfully with Metta?loving kindness, we purify the
atmosphere. Intellect is necessary for the overcoming of emotionality and spiritual
confusion as intuition is necessary for overcoming intellectual limitation and
conceptual abstraction.
We spend most of our time on our body: to feed it,
to clothe it, to cleanse it, to wash it, to beautify it, to relax it, but how
much time do we spend on our mind for the same purposes?
Some people take
the Buddha Image as an object and concentrate on it. Some concentrate on inhaling
and exhaling. Whatever may be the method, if anyone tries to practise meditation,
he is sure to find relaxation. Meditation will help him a great deal to have physical
and mental health and to control the mind when it is necessary.
Man can do
the highest service to the society by simply abstaining from evils. The cultured
mind that is developed through meditation performs a most useful service to others.
Meditation is not simply a waste of man's valuable time. The advanced mind of
a meditator can solve so many human problems and is very useful to enlighten others.
Meditation is very useful to help a person live peacefully despite various disturbances
that are so prevalent in this modern world. We cannot be expected to retire to
a jungle or forest to live in ivory towers?'far from the madding crowd'. By practising
right meditation we can have an abode for temporary oblivion. Meditation has the
purpose of training a person to face, understand and conquer this very world in
which we live. Meditation teaches us to adjust ourselves to bear with the numerous
obstacles to life in the modern world.
Some people practise meditation in
order to satisfy their material desires; they want to further their material gains.
They want to use meditation to get better jobs. They want to earn more money or
to operate their business more efficiently. Perhaps they fail to understand that
the aim of meditation is not to increase but to decrease desires. Materialistic
motives are hardly suitable for proper meditation, the goal of which lies beyond
worldly affairs. One should meditate to try to attain something that even money
cannot buy or bring.
If you practice meditation, you can learn to behave like
a gentleman even though you are disturbed by others. Through meditation you can
learn how to relax the body and to calm the mind; you can learn to be tranquil
and happy within.
Just as an engine gets overheated and damaged when it is
run for a prolonged period and requires cooling down to overcome this, so also
the mind gets overtaxed when we subject it to a sustained degree of mental effort
and it is only through meditation that relaxation or cooling can be achieved.
Meditation strengthens the mind to control human emotion when it is disturbed
by negative thoughts and feelings such as jealousy, anger, pride and envy.
If
you practise meditation, you can learn to make the proper decision when you are
at a cross-roads in life and are at a loss as to which way to turn. These qualities
cannot be purchased from anywhere. No amount of money or property can buy these
qualities, yet you attain them through meditation. And finally the ultimate object
of Buddhist meditation is to eradicate all defilements from the mind and to attain
the final goal--Nibbana.
Nowadays, however, the practice of meditation has
been abused by people. They want immediate and quick results, just as they expect
quick returns for everything they do in daily life. In Buddhism, as is the case
with other eastern cultures, patience is a most important quality. The mind must
be brought under control in slow degrees and one should not try to reach for the
higher states without proper training. We have heard of over-enthusiastic young
men and women literally going out of their minds because they adopted the wrong
attitudes towards meditation. Meditation is a gentle way of conquering the defilements
which pollute the mind. If people want 'success' or 'achievement' to boast to
others that they have attained this or that level of meditation, they are abusing
the method of mental culture. One must be trained in morality and one must clearly
understand that to be successful in the discipline of meditation worldly achievement
must not be equated with spiritual development. Ideally, it is good to work under
an experienced teacher who will help his student to develop along the right path.
But above all one must never be in a hurry to achieve too much too quickly.
The Significance of Paritta Chanting
Paritta chanting is the recital of some of the
Sutras uttered by the Buddha in the Pali language for the blessing and protection
of the devotees.
Paritta Chanting or Sutra Chanting is a well-known Buddhist
practice conducted all over the world, especially in Theravada Buddhist countries
where the Pali language is used for recitals. Many of these are important sutras
from the basic teachings of the Buddha which were selected by His disciples. Originally,
these sutras were recorded on ola leaves about two thousand years ago. Later,
they were compiled into a book known as the 'Paritta Chanting Book'. The names
of the original books from which these sutras were selected are the Anguttara
Nikaya, Majjhima Nikaya, Digha Nikaya, Samyutta Nikaya and Kuddaka Nikaya in the
Sutra Pitaka.
The sutras that Buddhists recite for protection are known as
Paritta Chanting. Here 'protection' means shielding ourselves from various forms
of evil spirits, misfortune, sickness and influence of the planetary systems as
well as instilling confidence in the mind. The vibrant sound of the chanting creates
a very pleasing atmosphere in the vicinity. The rhythm of the chanting is also
important. One might have noticed that when monks recite these sutras, different
intonations are adopted to harmonize with different sutras intended for different
quarters. It was found very early during man's spiritual development that certain
rhythms of the human voice could produce significant psychological states of peacefulness
and serenity in the minds of ardent listeners. Furthermore, intonation at certain
levels would appeal to devas, whilst certain rhythms would created a good influence
over lower beings like animals, snakes, or even spirits or ghosts. Therefore,
a soothing and correct rhythm is an important aspect of Paritta Chanting.
The
use of these rhythms is not confined to Buddhism alone. In every religion, when
the followers recite their prayers by using the holy books, they follow certain
rhythms. We can observe this when we listen to Quran reading by Muslims and the
Veda Mantra Chanting by Hindu priests in the Sanskrit language. Some lovely chanting
is also carried out by certain Christian groups, especially the Roman Catholic
and Greek orthodox sects.
When the sutras are chanted, three great and powerful
forces are activated. These are the forces of the Buddha, Dhamma and the Sangha.
Buddhism is the combination of these 'Three Jewels' and when invoked together
they can bring great blessing to mankind.
The Buddha. He had cultivated all
the great virtues, wisdom and enlightenment, developed His spiritual power and
gave us His noble Teachings. Even though the physical presence of the Teacher
is no more with us, His Teachings have remained for the benefit of mankind. Similarly,
the man who discovered electricity is no more with us, yet by using his knowledge,
the effect of his wisdom still remains. The illumination that we enjoy today is
the result of his wisdom. The scientists who discovered atomic energy are no longer
living, but the knowledge to use it remains with us. Likewise the Noble Teachings
given us through the Buddha's wisdom and enlightenment, are a most effective power
for people to draw inspiration from. When you remember Him and respect Him, you
develop confidence in Him. When you recite or listen to the words uttered by Him,
you invoke the power of His blessings.
Dhamma. It is the power of truth, justice
and peace discovered by the Buddha which provides spiritual solace for devotees
to maintain peace and happiness. When you develop your compassion, devotion and
understanding, this power of the Dhamma protects you and helps you to develop
more confidence and strength in your mind. Then your mind itself becomes a very
powerful force for your own protection. When it is known that you uphold the Dhamma,
people and other beings will respect you. The power of the Dhamma protects you
from various kinds of bad influence and evil forces. Those who cannot understand
the power of the Dhamma and how to live in accordance with the Dhamma, invariably
surrender themselves to all forms of superstitious beliefs and subject themselves
to the influence of many kinds of gods, spirits and mystical powers which require
them to perform odd rites and rituals. By so doing, they only develop more fear
and suspicion born out of ignorance. Large sums of money are spent on such practices
and this could be easily avoided if people were to develop their confidence in
the Dhamma. Dhamma is also described as 'nature' or 'natural phenomena' and 'cosmic
law'. Those who have learnt the nature of these forces can protect themselves
through the Dhamma. When the mind is calmed through perfect knowledge disturbances
cannot create fear in the mind.
The Sangha. It refers to the holy order of
monks who have renounced their worldly life for their spiritual development. They
are considered as disciples of the Buddha, who have cultivated great virtues to
attain sainthood or Arahantahood. We pay respect to the Sangha community as the
custodians of the Buddha Sasana or those who had protected and introduced the
Dhamma to the world over the last 2,500 years. The services rendered by the Sangha
community has guided mankind to lead a righteous and noble life. They are the
living link with the Enlightened One who bring His message to us through the recital
of the words uttered by Him.
The chanting of sutras for blessing was started
during the Buddha's time. Later, in certain Buddhist countries such as Sri Lanka,
Thailand and Burma, this practice was developed further by organizing prolonged
chanting for one whole night or for several days. With great devotion, devotees
participated in the chanting sessions by listening attentively and intelligently.
There were some occasions when the Buddha and His disciples chanted sutras to
bring spiritual solace to people suffering from epidemics, famines, sickness and
other natural disasters. On once occasion, when a child was reported to be affected
by some evil influence, the Buddha instructed His monks to recite sutras to give
protection to the child from the evil forces.
The blessing service, by way
of chanting, was effective. Of course, there were instances when the sutra chanting
could not be effective if the victims had committed some strong bad kamma. Nevertheless,
certain minor bad kammic effects can be overcome by the vibrant power combined
with the great virtues and compassion of those holy people who chant these sutras.
Here, the overcoming of a bad kammic effect does not mean the complete eradication
of the effect, but only a temporary suspension of such an effect.
Devotees
who were tired fatigued have experienced relief and calmness after listening to
the chanting of sutras. Such an experience is different from that provided by
music because music can create excitement in our mind and pander to our emotions
but does not create spiritual devotion and confidence.
For the last 2,500
years, Buddhist devotees have experienced the good effects of sutra chanting.
We should try to understand how and why the words uttered by the Buddha for blessing
purposes could be so effective even after His passing away. It is mentioned in
the Buddha's teaching that ever since he had the aspiration to become a Buddha
during His previous births, He had strongly upheld one particular principle, namely,
to abstain from 'telling lies'. Without abusing or misusing His words, He spoke
gently without hurting the feelings of others. The power of Truth has become a
source of strength in the words uttered by the Buddha with great compassion. However,
the power of the Buddha's word alone is not enough to secure blessing without
the devotion and understanding of the devotees.
The miraculous effect experienced
by many people in ridding themselves of their sickness and many other mental disturbances
through the medium of the Buddhist sutras, enabled them to develop their faith
and confidence in this form of religious service.
Are Buddhists Idol Worshippers?
Buddhists
are not idol worshippers but ideal worshippers.
Although it is customary amongst
Buddhists to keep Buddha images and to pay their respects to the Buddha, Buddhists
are not idol worshippers. Idolatry generally means erecting images of unknown
gods and goddesses in various shapes and sizes and to pray directly to these images.
The prayers are a request to the gods for guidance and protection. The gods and
goddesses are asked to bestow health, wealth, property and to provide for various
needs; they are asked to forgive transgressions.
The 'worshipping' at the
Buddha image is quite a different matter. Buddhists revere the image of the Buddha
as a gesture to the greatest, wisest, most benevolent, compassionate and holy
man who has ever lived in this world. It is a historical fact that this great
man actually lived in this world and has done a great service to mankind. The
worship of the Buddha really means paying homage, veneration and devotion to Him
and what He represents, and not to the stone or metal figure.
The image is
a visual aid that helps one to recall the Buddha in the mind and to remember His
great qualities which inspired millions of people from generation to generation
throughout the civilized world. Buddhists use the statue as a symbol and as an
object of concentration to gain a peace of mind. When Buddhists look upon the
image of the Buddha, they put aside thoughts of strife and think only of peace,
serenity, calmness and tranquillity. The statue enables the mind to recall this
great man and inspires devotees to follow His example and instructions. In their
mind, the devout Buddhists feel the living presence of the Master. This feeling
makes their act of worship become vivid and significant. The serenity of the Buddha
image influences and inspires them to observe the right path of conduct and thought.
An understanding Buddhist never asks favours from the image nor does he request
forgiveness for evil deeds committed. An understanding Buddhist tries to control
his mind, to follow the Buddha's advice, to get rid of worldly miseries and to
find his salvation.
Those who criticize Buddhists for practising idol worship
are really misinterpreting what Buddhists do. If people can keep the photographs
of their parents and grandparents to cherish in their memory, if people can keep
the photographs of kings, queens, prime ministers, great heroes, philosophers,
and poets, there is certainly no reason why Buddhists cannot keep their beloved
Master's picture or image to remember and respect Him.
What harm is there
if people recite some verses praising the great qualities of their Master? If
people can lay wreaths on the graves of beloved ones to express their gratitude,
what harm is there is Buddhists too offer some flowers, joss-sticks, incense,
etc., to their beloved Teacher who devoted His life to help suffering humanity?
People make statues of certain conquering heroes who were in fact murderers and
who were responsible for the death of millions of innocent people. For the sake
of power, these conquerors committed murder with hatred, cruelty and greed. They
invaded poor countries and created untold suffering by taking away lands and properties
of others, and causing much destruction. Many of these conquerors are regarded
as national heroes; memorial services are conducted for them and flowers are offered
on their graves and tombs. What is wrong then, if Buddhists pay their respects
to their world honored Teacher who sacrificed His worldly pleasures for the sake
of Enlightenment to show others the Path of Salvation?
Images are the language
of the subconscious. Therefore, the image of the Enlightened One is often created
within one's mind as the embodiment of perfection, the image will deeply penetrate
into the subconscious mind and (if it is sufficiently strong enough)can act as
an automatic brake against impulses. The recollection of the Buddha produces joy,
invigorate the mind and elevates man from states of restlessness, tension and
frustration. Thus the worship of the Buddha is not a prayer in its usual sense
but a meditation. Therefore, it is not idol worship, but 'ideal' worship. Thus
Buddhists can find fresh strength to build a shrine of their lives. They cleanse
their hearts until they feel worthy to bear the image in their innermost shrine.
Buddhists pay respects to the great person who is represented by the image. They
try to gain inspiration from His Noble personality and emulate Him. Buddhists
do not see the Buddha image as a dead idol of wood or metal or clay. The image
represents something vibrant to those who understand and are purified in thought,
word and deed.
The Buddha images are nothing more than symbolic representations
of His great qualities. It is not unnatural that the deep respect for the Buddha
should be expressed in some of the finest and most beautiful forms of art and
sculpture the world has ever known. It is difficult to understand why some people
look down on those who pay respect to images which represent holy religious teachers.
The calm and serene image of the Buddha has been a common concept of ideal
beauty. The Buddha's image is the most precious, common asset of Asian cultures.
Without the image of the Buddha, where can we find a serene, radiant and spiritually
emancipated personality?
But the image of the Buddha is appreciated not only
by Asian or Buddhists. Anatole France in his autobiography writes, 'On the first
of May, 1890, chance led me to visit the Museum in Paris. There standing in the
silence and simplicity of the gods of Asia, my eyes fell on the statue of the
Buddha who beckoned to suffering humanity to develop understanding and compassion.
If ever a god walked on this earth, I felt here was He. I felt like kneeling down
to Him and praying to Him as to a God.
Once a general left an image of the
Buddha as a legacy to Winston Churchill. The general said, 'if ever your mind
gets perturbed and perplexed, I want you to see this image and be comforted.'
What is it that makes the message of the Buddha so attractive to people who have
cultivated their intellect? Perhaps the answer can be seen in the serenity of
the image of the Buddha.
Not only in color and line did men express their
faith in the Buddha and the graciousness of His Teaching. Human hands wrought
in metal and stone to produce the Buddha image that is one of the greatest creations
of the human genius. Witness the famous image in the Abhayagiri Vihara in Sri
Lanka, or the Buddha image of Sarnath or the celebrated images of Borobudur. The
eyes are full of compassion and the hands express fearlessness, or goodwill and
blessings, or they unravel some thread of thought or call the earth to witness
His great search for Truth. Wherever the Dhamma went, the image of the great Teacher
went with it, not only as an object of worship but also as an object of meditation
and reverence. 'I known nothing,'says Keyserling,' more grand in this world than
the figure of the Buddha. It is an absolutely perfect embodiment of spirituality
in the visible domain.'
A life so beautiful, a heart so pure and kind, a mind
so deep and enlightened, a personality so inspiring and selfless?such a perfect
life, such a compassionate heart, such a calm mind, such a serene personality
is really worthy of respect, worthy of honour and worthy of offering. The Buddha
is the highest perfection of mankind.
The Buddha image is the symbol, not
of a person, but of Buddhahood--that to which all men can attain though few do.
For Buddhahood is not for one but for many: 'The Buddhas of the past ages, the
Buddhas that are yet to come, the Buddha of the present age; humbly I each day
adore.'
However, it is not compulsory for every Buddhist to have a Buddha
image to practise Buddhism. Those who can control their mind and the senses, can
certainly do so without an image as an object. If Buddhists truly wish to behold
the Buddha in all the majestic splendor and beauty of His ideal presence, they
must translate His Teachings into practice in their daily lives. It is in the
practice of His Teachings that they can come closer to Him and feel the wonderful
radiance of His undying wisdom and compassion. Simply respecting the images without
following His Sublime Teachings is not the way to find salvation.
We must
also endeavor to understand the spirit of the Buddha. His Teaching is the only
way to save this troubled world. In spite of the tremendous advantages of science
and technology, people in the world today are filled with fear, anxiety and despair.
The answer to our troubled world is found in the Teaching of the Buddha.
Religious Significance of Fasting
Many people
in the world face untimely death owing to over-eating.
In Buddhism, fasting
is recognized as one of the methods for practising self-control. The Buddha advised
monks not to take solid food after noon. Lay people who observe the eight Precepts
on full moon days also abstain from taking any solid food after noon.
Critics
sometimes regard these practices as religious fads. They are not religious fads
but practices based on a moral and psychological insight.
In Buddhism, fasting
is an initial stage of self-discipline to acquire self-control. In every religion,
there is a system of fasting. By fasting and sacrificing a meal once a day or
for any period, we can contribute our food to those who are starving or who do
not have even a proper meal each day.
'A man who eats too much', writes Leo
Tolstoy, 'cannot strive against laziness, while a gluttonous and idle man will
never be able to contend with sexual lust. Therefore, according to all moral teachings,
the effort towards self-control commences with a struggle against the lust of
gluttony?commences with fasting just as the first condition of a good life is
self-control, so the first condition of a life of self-control is fasting.'
Sages
in various countries who practised self-control began with a system of regulated
fasting and succeeded in attaining unbelievable heights of spirituality. An ascetic
was kicked and tortured, and then his hands and feet were severed on the orders
of a rakish king. But the ascetic, according to the Buddhist story, endured the
torture with equanimity and without the slightest anger or hatred. Such religious
people have developed their mental power through restraining from sensual indulgence.
Vegetarianism
One should not judge the purity or impurity of
man simply by observing what he eats.
In the Amagandha Sutta, the Buddha said:
'Neither meat, nor fasting, nor nakedness,
Nor shaven heads, nor matted
hair, nor dirt,
Nor rough skins, nor fire-worshipping,
Nor all the penances
here in this world,
Nor hymns, nor oblation, nor sacrifice,
Nor feasts of
the season,
Will purify a man overcome with doubt.'
Taking
fish and meat by itself does not make a man become impure. A man makes himself
impure by bigotry, deceit, envy, self-exaltation, disparagement and other evil
intentions. Through his own evil thoughts and actions, man makes himself impure.
There is no strict rule in Buddhism that the followers of the Buddha should not
take fish and meat. The only advice given by the Buddha is that they should not
be involved in killing intentionally or they should not ask others to kill any
living being for them. However, those who take vegetable food and abstain from
animal flesh are praiseworthy.
Though the Buddha did not advocate vegetarianism
for the monks, He did advise the monks to avoid taking ten kinds of meat for their
self respect and protection. They are: humans, elephants, horses, dogs, snakes,
lions, tigers, leopards, bears hyenas. Some animals attack people when they smell
the flesh of their own kind. (Vinaya Pitaka)
When the Buddha was asked to
introduce vegetarianism amongst His disciples, the Buddha refused to do so. As
Buddhism is a free religion, His advice was to leave the decision regarding vegetarianism
to the individual disciple. It clearly shows that the Buddha had not considered
this as a very important religious observance. The Buddha did not mention anything
about vegetarianism for the lay Buddhists in His Teaching.
Jivaka Komarabhacca,
the doctor, discussed this controversial issue with the Buddha: 'Lord, I have
heard that animals are slaughtered on purpose for the recluse Gotama, and that
the recluse Gotama knowingly eats the meat killed on purpose for him. Lord, do
those who say animals are slaughtered on purpose for the recluse Gotama, and the
recluse Gotama knowingly eats the meat killed on purpose for. Do they falsely
accuse the Buddha? Or do they speak the truth? Are your declaration and supplementary
declarations not thus subject to be ridiculed by others in any manner?'
'Jivaka,
those who say: 'Animals are slaughtered on purpose for the recluse Gotama, and
the recluse Gotama knowingly eats the meat killed on purpose for him', do not
say according to what I have declared, and they falsely accuse me. Jivaka, I have
declared that one should not make use of meat it is seen, heard or suspected to
have been killed on purpose for a monk. I allow the monks meat that is quite pure
in three respects: if it is not seen, heard or suspected to have been killed on
purpose for a monk.' (Jivaka Sutta)
In certain countries, the followers of
the Mahayana school of Buddhism are strict vegetarians. While appreciating their
observance in the name of religion, we should like to point out that they should
not condemn those who are not vegetarians. They must remember that there is no
precept in the original Teachings of the Buddha that requires all Buddhists to
be vegetarians. We must realize that Buddhism is known as the Middle Path. It
is a liberal religion and the Buddha's advice was that it is not necessary to
go to extremes to practise His Teachings.
Vegetarianism alone does not help
a man to cultivate his humane qualities. There are kind, humble, polite and religious
people amongst non-vegetarians. Therefore, one should not condone the statement
that a pure, religious man must practise vegetarianism.
On the other hand,
if anybody thinks that people cannot have a healthy life without taking fish and
meat, it does not necessarily follow that they are correct since there are millions
of pure vegetarians all over the world who are stronger and healthier than the
meat-eaters.
People who criticize Buddhists who eat meat do not understand
the Buddhist attitude towards food. A living being needs nourishment. We eat to
live. As such a human being should supply his body with the food it needs to keep
him healthy and to give him energy to work. However, as a result of increasing
wealth, more and more people, especially in developed countries, eat simply to
satisfy their palates. If one craves after any kind of food, or kills to satisfy
his greed for meat, this is wrong. But if one eats without greed and without directly
being involved in the act of killing but merely to sustain the physical body,
he is practising self restraint.
The Moon and Religious Observances
The
outstanding events in the life of the Buddha took place on full moon days.
Many
people would like to know the religious significance of the full moon and new
moon days. To Buddhists, there is a special religious significance especially
on full day because certain important and outstanding events connected with the
life of Lord Buddha took place on full moon days. The Buddha was born on a full
moon day. His renunciation took place on a full moon day. His Enlightenment, the
delivery of His first sermon, His passing away into Nibbana and many other important
events associated with His life-span of eighty years, occurred on full moon days.
Buddhists all over the world have a high regard for full moon days. They celebrate
this day with religious fervor by observing precepts, practising meditation and
by keeping away from the sensual worldly life. On this day they direct their attention
to spiritual development. Apart from Buddhists, it is understood that other co-religionists
also believe that there is some religious significance related to the various
phases of the moon. They also observe certain religious disciplines such as fasting
and praying on full moon days.
Ancient belief in India says that the moon
is the controller of the water, and circulating through the universe, sustaining
all living creatures, is the counterpart on earth of the liquor heaven, 'amrta'the
drink of the gods. Dew and rain become vegetable sap, sap becomes the milk of
cow, and the milk is then converted into blood. Amrta water, sap, milk and blood,
represent but different states of the one elixir. The vessel or cup of this immortal
fluid is the moon.
It is believed that the moon, like the other planets, exerts
a considerable degree of influence on human beings. It has been observed that
people suffering from mental ailments invariably have their passions and emotional
feelings affected during full moon days. The word 'lunatic' derived from the word
'lunar' (or moon) is most significant and indicates very clearly the influence
of the moon on human life. Some people, suffering from various forms of illness
invariably find their sickness aggravated during such periods. Researchers have
found that certain phases of the moon not only affect humans and animals, but
also influence plant life and other elements. Low-tides and high-tides are a direct
result of the overpowering influence of the moon.
Our human body consists
of about seventy percent liquid. It is accepted by physicians that our bodily
fluids flow more freely at the time of full moon. People suffering from asthma,
bronchitis and even certain skin diseases, find their ailments aggravated under
the influence of the moon. More than five thousand years ago, people had recognized
the influence of the moon on cultivation. Farmers were very particular about the
effect of the moon on their crops. They knew that certain grains and paddy would
be affected if blooming took place during a full moon period. Medical science
had also ascertained the different reactions of certain medicines under different
facets of the moon, because of the influence of the moon on human beings.
In
view of the possible influence of the moon, the ancient sages advised the people
to refrain from various commitments on this particular day and take it easy for
the day. They are advised to relax their minds on this particular day and to devote
their time to spiritual pursuits. All those who have developed their minds to
a certain extent can achieve enlightenment since the brain is in an awakened state.
Those who have not trained their minds through religious discipline are liable
to be subjected to the strong influence of the moon. The Buddha attained His Enlightenment
on a full moon day for He had developing and attuning it correctly for a long
period.
In days gone by, full moon and new moon days were declared public
holidays in many Buddhist countries and people were encouraged to devote their
time to spiritual development. It was only during the colonial period that holidays
were switched over to Sundays. In view of this, some Buddhist countries are now
trying to re-introduce the former lunar system of holidays. It is advisable to
observe full moon day as a religious day to concentrate on peace and happiness
by calming down the senses. Many Buddhists observe the eight precepts on full
moon days, to be free from family commitments and to keep away from worldly pleasures
in order to have peace of mind for their spiritual development. The effects of
the moon on life and earth has been analysed scientifically.
One writer says:
'I have been reading an article in an American science magazine recently where
the writer brings together the present on the subject of the moon to prove how
decisively this age old object of the skies influences our lives, particularly
at each of the four phases it passes through in its 28-day cycle.
This research,
by the way, was done at the American Universities of Yale, Duke and Northwestern
and they have 'independently' come up with the astonishing evidence that the moon
plays a big part in our daily life and indeed, in the lives of all living things.
We are assured that there is nothing very occult in this phenomenon put that
the phases of the moon do in fact stimulate various bodily actions like modifying
metabolism, electrical charges and blood acidity.
One of the key experiments
performed to establish this fact was on fiddler crabs, mice and some plants. They
were all placed in chambers where weather conditions could not affect them, but
were subjected to air pressure, humidity, light and temperature under controlled
conditions.
The hundreds of observations made showed a remarkable fact, namely
that all the animals and plants operated on a 28-day cycle. Metabolism which was
found to have dropped at the time of the new moon was twenty percent higher at
the time of the phase of the full moon. This difference is described as a striking
variation.
Once a nurse in Florida told a doctor that she noticed a lot more
bleeding occurred when the moon is full. Like all doctors who are skeptical about
such beliefs, he laughed at this statement.
But the nurse, undeterred, produced
records of surgical operations which clearly showed that during full moon, more
patients had to be returned to the operating theater than at any other time for
treatment for excessively bleeding after operations. To satisfy himself, this
doctor started keeping records on his own and he came to a similar conclusion.
When we consider all those occurrences, we can understand why our ancestors and
religious teachers had advised us to change our daily routine and to relax physically
and mentally on full moon and new moon days. The practise of religion is the most
appropriate method for people to experience mental peace and physical relaxation.
The Buddhists are merely observing the wisdom of the past when they devote more
time to activities of a spiritual nature on New Moon and Full Moon days.
Part Four
Human Life in
Society
Chapter 11
Life and Culture
Traditions, Customs
and Festivals
Buddhism is open to traditions and customs provided they are
not harmful to the welfare of others.
The Buddha advised us not to believe
in anything simply because it is the traditional custom. However, we are not advised
to suddenly do away with all traditions. 'You must try to experiment with them
and put them thoroughly to test. If they are reasonable and conducive both to
your happiness and to the welfare of others, only then should you accept and practise
these traditions and customs.' (Kalama Sutta) This is certainly one of the most
liberal declarations ever made by any religious teacher. This tolerance of other's
traditions and customs is not known to some other religionists. These religionists
usually advise their new converts to give up all their traditions, customs and
culture without observing whether they are good or bad. While preaching the Dhamma,
Buddhist missionaries have never advised the people to give up their traditions
as long as they are reasonable. But the customs and traditions must be within
the framework of religious principles. In other words, one should not violate
the religious precepts in order to follow one's traditions. If people are very
keen to follow their own traditions which have no religious value at all, they
can do so provided that they do not practise these traditions in the name of religion.
Even then, such practices must be harmless to oneself and to all other living
creatures.
Rites and Rituals
These
are included within customs and traditions. The rites and rituals are an ornamentation
or a decoration to beautify a religion in order to attract the public. They provide
a psychological help to some people. But one can practise religion without any
rites and rituals. Certain rites and rituals that people consider as the most
important aspect of their religion for their salvation are not considered as such
in Buddhism. According to the Buddha, one should not cling to such practices for
his spiritual development or mental purity.
Festivals
Genuine and
sincere Buddhists do not observe Buddhist festivals by enjoying themselves under
the influence of liquor and merry-making or holding feasts by the slaughtering
of animals. The true Buddhists observe festival days in an entirely different
manner. On the particular festival day, they would devote their time to abstaining
from all evil. They would practise charity and help others to relieve themselves
from their suffering. They may entertain friends and relatives in a respectable
way.
The festivals that have been incorporated with religion sometimes could
pollute the purity of a religion. On the other hand a religion without festivals
can become very dull and lifeless to many people. Usually children and youths
come to religion through religious festivals. To them the attraction of a religion
is based on its festivals. However, to a mediator, festivals can become a nuisance.
Of course, some people will not be satisfied with religious observances only
during a festival . They naturally like to have some sort of merry-making and
outward show. Rites, rituals, ceremonies, processions and festivals are organized
to quench that thirst for emotional satisfaction through religion. No one can
say that such practices are wrong, but devotees have to organize those ceremonies
in a cultured manner, without causing a nuisance to others.
Buddhism and Women
A female child may prove
even to be a better offspring than a male.
Women's position in Buddhism is
unique. The Buddha gave women full freedom to participate in a religious life.
The Buddha was the first religious Teacher who gave this religious freedom to
women. Before the Buddha, women's duties had been restricted to the kitchen; women
were not even allowed to enter any temple or to recite any religious scripture.
During the Buddha's time, women's position in society was very low. The Buddha
was criticized by the prevailing establishment when He gave this freedom to women.
His move to allow women to enter the Holy Order was extremely radical for the
times. Yet the Buddha allowed women to prove themselves and to show that they
too had the capacity like men to attain the highest position in the religious
way of life by attaining Arahantahood. Every woman in the world must be grateful
to the Buddha for showing them the real religious way of living and for giving
such freedom to them for the first time in world history.
A good illustration
of the prevailing attitude towards women during the Buddha's time is found in
these words of Mara:
'No woman, with the two-finger wisdom (narrow)which is
hers, could ever hope to reach those heights which are attained only by the sages.'
Undoubtedly, the Buddha was vehement in contradicting such attitude. The nun
(bhikkhuni) to whom Mara addressed these words, gave the following reply:
'When
one's mind is well concentrated and wisdom never fails, does the fact of being
a woman make any difference?'
King Kosala was very disappointed when he heard
that his Queen had given birth to a baby girl. He had expected a boy. To console
the sad King, the Buddha said:
'A female child, O Lord of men, may prove
Even
a better offspring than a male.
For she may grow up wise and virtuous,
Her
husband's mother reverencing, true wife,
The boy that she may bear may do
great deeds,
And rule great realms, yes, such a son
Of noble wife becomes
his country's guide,'
(Samyutta Nikaya)
The Buddha has confirmed that
man is not always the only wise one; woman is also wise.
Nowadays many religionists
like to claim that their religions give women equal rights. We only have to look
at the world around us today to see the position of women in many societies. It
seems that they have no property rights, are discriminated in various fields and
generally suffer abuse in many subtle forms. Even in western countries, women
like the Suffragettes had to fight very hard for their rights. According to Buddhism,
it is not justifiable to regard women as inferior. The Buddha Himself was born
as a woman on several occasions during His previous births in Samsara and even
as a women He developed the noble qualities and wisdom until He gained Enlightenment
or Buddhahood.
Buddhism and Politics
The Buddha had gone beyond all worldly affairs,
but still gave advice on good government.
The Buddha came from a warrior caste
and was naturally brought into association with kings, princes and ministers.
Despite His origin and association, He never resorted to the influence of political
power to introduce His teaching, nor allowed His Teaching to be misused for gaining
political power. But today, many politicians try to drag the Buddha's name into
politics by introducing Him as a communist, capitalist, or even an imperialist.
They have forgotten that the new political philosophy as we know it really developed
in the West long after the Buddha's time. Those who try to make use of the good
name of the Buddha for their own personal advantage must remember that the Buddha
was the Supremely Enlightened One who had gone beyond all worldly concerns.
There
is an inherent problem of trying to intermingle religion with politics. The basis
of religion is morality, purity and faith, while that for politics is power. In
the course of history, religion has often been used to give legitimacy to those
in power and their exercise of that power. Religion was used to justify wars and
conquests, persecutions, atrocities, rebellions, destruction of works of art and
culture.
When religion is used to pander to political whims, it has to forego
its high moral ideals and become debased by worldly political demands.
The
thrust of the Buddha Dhamma is not directed to the creation of new political institutions
and establishing political arrangements. Basically, it seeks to approach the problems
of society by reforming the individuals constituting that society and by suggesting
some general principles through which the society can be guided towards greater
humanism, improved welfare of its members, and more equitable sharing of resources.
There is a limit to the extent to which a political system can safeguard the
happiness and prosperity of its people. No political system, no matter how ideal
it may appear to be, can bring about peace and happiness as long as the people
in the system are dominated by greed, hatred and delusion. In addition, no matter
what political system is adopted, there are certain universal factors which the
members of that society will have to experience: the effects of good and bad kamma,
the lack of real satisfaction or everlasting happiness in the world characterized
by dukkha(unsatisfactoriness), anicca(impermanence), and anatta(egolessness).
To the Buddhist, nowhere in Samsara is there real freedom, not even in the heavens
or the world of Brahama.
Although a good and just political system which guarantees
basic human rights and contains checks and balances to the use of power is an
important condition for a happy in society, people should not fritter away their
time by endlessly searching for the ultimate political system where men can be
completely free, because complete freedom cannot be found in any system but only
in minds which are free. To be free, people will have to look within their own
minds and work towards freeing themselves from the chains of ignorance and craving.
Freedom in the truest sense is only possible when a person uses Dhamma to develop
his character through good speech and action and to train his mind so as to expand
his mental potential and achieve his ultimate aim of enlightenment.
While
recognizing the usefulness of separating religion from politics and the limitations
of political systems in bringing about peace and happiness, there are several
aspects of the Buddha's teaching which have close correspondence to the political
arrangements of the present day. Firstly, the Buddha spoke about the equality
of all human beings long before Abraham Lincoln, and that classes and castes are
artificial barriers erected by society. The only classification of human beings,
according to the Buddha, is based on the quality of their moral conduct. Secondly,
the Buddha encouraged the spirit of social -co-operation and active participation
in society. This spirit is actively promoted in the political process of modern
societies. Thirdly, since no one was appointed as the Buddha's successor, the
members of the Order were to be guided by the Dhamma and Vinaya, or in short,
the Rule of Law. Until today very member of the Sangha is to abide by the Rule
of Law which governs and guides their conduct.
Fourthly, the Buddha encouraged
the spirit of consultation and the democratic process. This is shown within the
community of the Order in which all members have the right to decide on matters
of general concern. When a serious question arose demanding attention, the issues
were put before the monks and discussed in a manner similar to the democratic
parliamentary system used today. This self-governing procedure may come as a surprise
to many to learn that in the assemblies of Buddhists in India 2,500 years and
more ago are to be found the rudiments of the parliamentary practice of the present
day. A special officer similar to 'Mr. Speaker' was appointed to preserve the
dignity of the Parliamentary Chief Whip, was also appointed to see if the quorum
was secured. Matters were put forward in the form of a motion which was open to
discussion. In some cases it was done once, in others three times, thus anticipating
the practice of Parliament in requiring that a bill be read a third time before
it becomes law. If the discussion showed a difference of opinion, it was to be
settled by the vote of the majority through balloting.
The Buddhist approach
to political power is the moralization and the responsible use of public power.
The Buddha preached non-violence and peace as a universal message. He did not
approve of violence or the destruction of life, and declared that there is no
such thing as a 'just' war. He taught: 'The victor breeds hatred, the defeated
lives in misery. He who renounces both victory and defeat is happy and peaceful.'
Not only did the Buddha teach non-violence and peace, He was perhaps the first
and only religious teacher who went to the battlefield personally to prevent the
outbreak of a war. He diffused tension between the Sakyas and the Koliyas who
were about to wage war over the waters of Rohini. He also dissuaded King Ajatasattu
from attacking the Kingdom of the Vajjis.
The Buddha discussed the importance
and the prerequisites of a good government. He showed how the country could become
corrupt, degenerate and unhappy when the head of the government becomes corrupt
and unjust. He spoke against corruption and how a government should act based
on humanitarian principles.
The Buddha once said, 'When the ruler of a country
is just and good, the ministers become just and good; when the ministers are just
and good, the higher officials become just and good; when the higher officials
are just and good, the rank and file become just and good; when the rank and file
become just and good, the people become just and good.'(Anguttara Nikaya)
In
the Cakkavatti Sihananda Sutta, the Buddha said that immorality and crime, such
as theft, falsehood, violence, hatred, cruelty, could arise from poverty. Kings
and governments may try to suppress crime through punishment, but it is futile
to eradicate crimes through force.
In the Kutadanta Sutta, the Buddha suggested
economic development instead of force to reduce crime. The government should use
the country's resources to improve the economic conditions of the country. It
could embark on agricultural and rural development, provide financial support
to entrepreneurs and business, provide adequate wages for workers to maintain
a decent life with human dignity.
In the Jataka, the Buddha had given to rules
for Good Government, known as 'Dasa Raja Dharma'. These ten rules can be applied
even today by any government which wishes to rule the country peacefully. The
rules are as follows:
be liberal and avoid selfishness,
maintain a high
moral character,
be prepared to sacrifice one's own pleasure for the well-being
of the subjects,
be honest and maintain absolute integrity,
be kind and
gentle,
lead a simple life for the subjects to emulate,
be free from hatred
of any kind,
exercise non-violence,
practise patience, and
respect public
opinion to promote peace and harmony.
Regarding the behavior of rulers, He
further advised:
A good ruler should act impartially and should not be biased
and discriminate between one particular group of subjects against another.
A
good ruler should not harbor any form of hatred against any of his subjects.
A
good ruler should show no fear whatsoever in the enforcement of the law, if it
is justifiable.
A good ruler must possess a clear understanding of the law
to be enforced. It should not be enforced just because the ruler has the authority
to enforce the law. It must be done in a reasonable manner and with common sense.
(Cakkavatti
Sihananda Sutta)
In the Milinda Panha,it is stated: 'If a man, who is unfit,
incompetent, immoral, improper, unable and unworthy of kingship, has enthroned
himself a king or a ruler with great authority, he is subject to be tortured?to
be subject to a variety of punishment by the people, because, being unfit and
unworthy, he has placed himself unrighteously in the seat of sovereignty. The
ruler, like others who violate and transgress moral codes and basic rules of all
social laws of mankind, is equally subject to punishment; and moreover, to be
censured is the ruler who conducts himself as a robber of the public.' In a Jataka
story, it is mentioned that a ruler who punishes innocent people and does not
punish the culprit is not suitable to rule a country.
The king always improves
himself and carefully examines his own conduct in deeds, words and thoughts, trying
to discover and listen to public opinion as to whether or not he had been guilty
of any faults and mistakes in ruling the kingdom. If it is found that he rules
unrighteously, the public will complain that they are ruined by the wicked ruler
with unjust treatment, punishment, taxation, or other oppressions including corruption
of any kind, and they will react against him in one way or another. On the contrary,
if he rules righteously they will bless him: 'Long live His Majesty.' (Majjhima
Nikaya)
The Buddha'semphasis on the moral duty of a ruler to use public power
to improve the welfare of the people had inspired Emperor Asoka in the Third Century
B.C. to do likewise. Emperor Asoka, a sparkling example of this principle, resolved
to live according to and preach the Dhamma and to serve his subjects and all humanity.
He declared his non-aggressive intentions to his neighbors, assuring them of his
goodwill and sending envoys to distant kings bearing his message of peace and
non-aggression. He promoted the energetic practice of the socio-moral virtues
of honesty, truthfulness, compassion, benevolence, non-violence, considerate behavior
towards all, non-extravagance, non-acquisitiveness, and non-injury to animals.
He encouraged religious freedom and mutual respect for each other's creed. He
went on periodic tours preaching the Dhamma to the rural people. He undertook
works of public utility, such as founding of hospitals for men and animals, supplying
of medicine, planting of roadside trees and groves, digging of wells, and construction
of watering sheds and rest houses. He expressly forbade cruelty to animals.
Sometimes
the Buddha is said to be a social reformer. Among other things, He condemned the
caste system, recognized the equality of people, spoke on the need to improve
socio-economic conditions, recognized the importance of a more equitable distribution
of wealth among the rich and the poor, raised the status of women, recommended
the incorporation of humanism in government and administration, and taught that
a society should not be run by greed but with consideration and compassion for
the people. Despite all these, His contribution to mankind is much greater because
He took off at a point which no other social reformer before or ever since had
done, that is, by going to the deepest roots of human ill which are found in the
human mind. It is only in the human mind that true reform can be effected. Reforms
imposed by force upon the external world have a very short life because they have
no roots. But those reforms which spring as a result of the transformation of
man's inner consciousness remain rooted. While their branches spread outwards,
they draw their nourishment from an unfailing source _the subconscious imperatives
of the life-stream itself. So reforms come about when men's minds have prepared
the way for them, and they live as long as men revitalize them out of their own
love of truth, justice and their fellow men.
The doctrine preached by the
Buddha is not one based on 'Political Philosophy'. Nor is it a doctrine that encourages
men to worldly pleasures. It sets out a way to attain Nibbana. In other words,
its ultimate aim is to put an end to craving (Tanha) that keeps them in bondage
to this world. A stanza from the Dhammapada best summarizes this statement: 'The
path that leads to worldly gain is one, and the path that leads to Nibbana(by
leading a religious life)is another.' However, this does not mean that Buddhists
cannot or should not get involved in the political process, which is a social
reality. The lives of the members of a society are shaped by laws and regulations,
economic arrangements allowed within a country, institutional arrangements, which
are influenced by the political arrangements of that society. Nevertheless, if
a Buddhist wishes to be involved in politics, he should not misuse religion to
gain political powers, nor is it advisable for those who have renounced the worldly
life to lead a pure, religious life to be actively involved in politics.
Chapter 12
Marriage, Birth
Control And Death
Buddhist Views on Marriage
In
Buddhism, marriage is regarded as entirely a personal, individual concern and
not as a religious duty.
Marriage is a social convention, an institution created
by man for the well-being and happiness of man, to differentiate human society
from animal life and to maintain order and harmony in the process of procreation.
Even though the Buddhist texts are silent on the subject of monogamy or polygamy,
the Buddhist laity is advised to limit themselves to one wife. The Buddha did
not lay rules on married life but gave necessary advice on how to live a happy
married life. There are ample inferences in His sermons that it is wise and advisable
to be faithful to one wife and not to be sensual and to run after other women.
The Buddha realized that one of the main causes of man's downfall is his involvement
with other women (Parabhava Sutta).Man must realize the difficulties, the trials
and tribulations that he has to undergo just to maintain a wife and a family.
These would be magnified many times when faced with calamities. Knowing the frailties
of human nature, the Buddha did, in one of His precepts, advise His followers
of refrain from committing adultery or sexual misconduct.
The Buddhist views
on marriage are very liberal: in Buddhism, marriage is regarded entirely as personal
and individual concern, and not as a religious duty. There are no religious laws
in Buddhism compelling a person to be married, to remain as a bachelor or to lead
a life of total chastity. It is not laid down anywhere that Buddhists must produce
children or regulate the number of children that they produce. Buddhism allows
each individual the freedom to decide for himself all the issues pertaining to
marriage. It might be asked why Buddhist monks do not marry, since there are no
laws for or against marriage. The reason is obviously that to be of service to
mankind, the monks have chosen a way of life which includes celibacy. Those who
renounce the worldly life keep away from married life voluntarily to avoid various
worldly commitments in order to maintain peace of mind and to dedicate their lives
solely to serve others in the attainment of spiritual emancipation. Although Buddhist
monks do not solemnize a marriage ceremony, they do perform religious services
in order to bless the couples.
Divorce
Separation
or divorce is not prohibited in Buddhism though the necessity would scarcely arise
if the Buddha's injunctions were strictly followed. Men and women must have the
liberty to separate if they really cannot agree with each other. Separation is
preferable to avoid miserable family life for a long period of time. The Buddha
further advises old men not to have young wives as the old and young are unlikely
to be compatible, which can create undue problems, disharmony and downfall (Parabhava
Sutta).
A society grows through a network of relationships which are mutually
inter-twined and inter-dependent. Every relationship is a whole hearted commitment
to support and to protect others in a group or community. Marriage plays a very
important part in this strong web of relationships of giving support and protection.
A good marriage should grow and develop gradually from understanding and not impulse,
from true loyalty and not just sheer indulgence. The institution of marriage provides
a fine basis for the development of culture, a delightful association of two individuals
to be nurtured, and to be free from loneliness, deprivation and fear. In marriage,
each partner develops a complementary role, giving strength and moral courage
to one another, each manifesting a supportive and appreciative recognition of
the other's skills. There must be no thought of either man or woman being superior?each
is complementary to the other, a partnership of equality, exuding gentleness,
generosity, calm and dedication.
Birth
Control, Abortion and Suicide
Although man has freedom to plan his family according
to his own convenience, abortion is not justifiable.
There is no reason for
Buddhists to oppose birth control. They are at liberty to use any of the old or
modern measures to prevent conception. Those who object to birth control by saying
that it is against God's law to practise it, must realize that their concept regarding
this issue is not reasonable. In birth control what is done is to prevent the
coming into being of an existence. There is no killing involved and there is no
akusala kamma. But if they take any action to have an abortion, this action is
wrong because it involves taking away or destroying a visible or invisible life.
Therefore, abortion is not justifiable.
According to the Teachings of the
Buddha, five conditions must be present to constitute the evil act of killing.
They are:
a living being
knowledge or awareness it is a living being
intention
of killing
effort to kill, and
consequent death
When a female conceives,
there is a being in her womb and this fulfills the first condition. After a couple
of months, she knows that there is a new life within her and this satisfies the
second condition. Then for some reason or other, she wants to do away with this
being in her. So she begins to search for an abortionist to do the job and in
this way, the third condition is fulfilled. When the abortionist does his job,
the fourth condition is provided for and finally, the being is killed because
of that action. So all the conditions are present. In this way, there is a violation
of the First Precept 'not to kill', and this is tantamount to killing a human
being. According to Buddhism, there is no ground to say that we have the right
to take away the life of another.
Under certain circumstances, people feel
compelled to do that for their own convenience. But they should not justify this
act of abortion as somehow or other they will have to face some sort of bad karmic
results. In certain countries abortion is legalized, but this is to overcome some
problems. Religious principles should never be surrendered for the pleasure of
man. They stand for the welfare of the whole mankind.
Committing
Suicide
Taking one's own life under any circumstances is morally and spiritually
wrong. Taking one's own life owing to frustration or disappointment only causes
greater suffering. Suicide is a cowardly way to end one's problems of life. A
person cannot commit suicide if his mind is pure and tranquil. If one leaves this
world with a confused and frustrated mind, it is most unlikely that he would be
born again in a better condition. Suicide is an unwholesome or unskillful act
since it is encouraged by a mind filled with greed, hatred and delusion. Those
who commit suicide have not learnt how to face their problems, how to face the
facts of life, and how to use their mind in a proper manner. Such people have
not been able to understand the nature of life and worldly conditions.
Some
people sacrifice their own lives for what they deem as a good and noble cause.
They take their own life by such methods as self-immolation, bullet-fire, or starvation.
Such actions may be classified as brave and courageous. However, from the Buddhist
point of view, such acts are not to be condoned. The Buddha has clearly pointed
out that the suicidal states of mind lead to further suffering.
Why Does
the World Population Increase?
There
is really no ground to think that this is the only period in which the population
of the world has increased.
If Buddhists do not believe in the soul created
by god, how are they going to account for the increase of population in the world
today? This is a very common question that is asked by many people today. People
who ask this question usually assume that there is only one world where living
beings exist. One must consider that it is quite natural for the population to
increase in such places where good climatic conditions, medical facilities, food
and precautions are available to produce and to protect living beings.
One
must also consider that there is really no ground to think that this is the only
period in which the population in the world has increased. There are no means
of comparison with any period of ancient history. Vast civilizations existed and
have disappeared in Central Asia, the Middle East, Africa and Ancient America.
No census figures on these civilizations are even remotely available. Population,
as everything else in the universe, is subject to cycles of rise and fall. In
cycles of alarming increases of birth rate, one might be consequently tempted
to argue against rebirth in this or other worlds. For the last few thousand years,
there has been no evidence to prove that there were more people in some parts
of the world than there are today. The number of beings existing in the various
world systems is truly infinite. If human lives can be compared to only one grain
of sand, the number of beings in the universe is like the grains of sand all the
beaches in the world. When conditions are right and when supported by their good
kamma, a few of these infinite number of beings are reborn as human beings. The
advancement of medicine especially in the 19th and 20th centuries has enabled
human beings to live longer and healthier lives.
This is a factor that contributes
to population increase. Population can further increase unless sensible people
take measures to control it. Hence, the credit or responsibility of increasing
the population must be given to medical facilities and other circumstances available
today. This credit or responsibility cannot be allotted to any particular religion
or any external sources.
There is a belief among certain people that all unfortunate
occurrences that destroy human lives are created by god in order to reduce the
population of the world. Instead of giving so much suffering to his own creatures,
why cannot he control the population? Why does he create more and more people
in thickly populated countries where there is no proper food, clothing and other
basic and necessary requirements? Those who believe that god created everything
cannot give a satisfactory answer to this question. Poverty, unhappiness, war,
hunger, disease, famine are not due to the will of god or to the whim of some
devil, but to causes which are not so difficult to discover.
Sex
and Religion
?
'The
lower part of us is still animal.'(Gandhi)
The sex impulse is the most dynamic
force in human nature. So far-reaching is the sexual force that some measures
of self-control is necessary even in ordinary existence. In the case of the spiritual
aspirant, for whoever wants to bring his mind under complete control, a still
greater measure of self-discipline is necessary. Such a powerful force in human
character can be subdued only if the aspirant controls his thoughts and practises
concentration. The conservation of the sexual force helps to develop this strength.
For if he controls the sexual force, he will have more control over his whole
make-up, over his lesser emotions.
Celibacy is one of the requirements for
those who like to develop their spiritual development to perfection. However,
it is not compulsory for each and every person to observe complete celibacy in
order to practise Buddhism. The Buddha's advice is that observing celibacy is
more congenial for a person who wants to cultivate his spiritual achievements.
For ordinary Buddhist laymen, the precept is to abstain from sexual misconduct.
Although perversion of the sexual force is not under this same category, the perverted
person invariably suffers bad reactions either physically, or mentally or both.
There is a need for Buddhist laymen to exercise some degree of control over
their sexual force. Man's sexual urge must be controlled properly otherwise man
will behave worse than an animal when he is intoxicated with lust. Consider the
sexual behavior of what we call the 'lower animal'. Which really is often 'lower'?
The animal or the man? Which acts in a normal, regular manner as regards sexual
behavior? And which runs off into all manner of irregularities and perversities?
Often it is the animal that is the higher creature and man that is the lower.
And why is this? It is simply because man who possesses the mental capacity which
if rightly used, could make him master over his sex impulses, has actually used
his mental powers in such deplorable fashion as to make himself more a slave to
those impulses. Thus man can, at times, be considered lower than the animal.
Our
ancestors played down this sexual impulse; they knew that it was strong enough
without giving it any extra encouragement. But today we have blown it up with
a thousand forms of incitation, suggestive advertisements, emphasis and display;
and we have armed the sexual force with the doctrine that inhibition is dangerous
and can even cause mental disorders.
Yet inhibition the control of impulse
is the first principle of any civilization. In our modern civilization, we have
polluted the sexual atmosphere that surrounds us. So great is the mind-body urge
for sexual gratification.
As a result of this sex exploitation by the hidden
persuaders of modern society, the youth of today have developed an attitude toward
sex that is becoming a public nuisance. An innocent girl has no freedom to move
anywhere without being disturbed. On the other hand, females should be dressed
such a manner as not to arouse the hidden animal nature of youths.
Man is
the only animal that does not have periods of natural sexual inactivity during
which the body can recover its vitality. Unfortunately, commercial exploitation
of the erotic nature in man has caused modern man to be exposed to a ceaseless
barrage of sexual stimulation from every side. Much of the neuroses of present-day
life is traceable to this unbalanced state of affairs. Men are expected to be
monogamous, yet women are encouraged in every possible way to 'glamorize' themselves,
not for the husband alone, but to excite in every man passions that society forbids
him to indulge in.
Many societies try to enforce monogamous relationships.
Thus a man with many failings can still be a moral man, meaning that he is faithful
to the one wife that the law allows him to have. The danger here lies in the fact
that thoughtful people who are intelligent enough to realize that these rules
are artificial and not based on any transcendental, universally valid principles,
are liable to fall into the error of thinking the same about all the other ethical
laws.
Sex should be given its due place in normal human life; it should be
neither unhealthily repressed nor morbidly exaggerated. And it should always be
under the control of the will, as it can be if it is regarded sanely and placed
in its proper perspective.
Sex should not be considered as the most important
ingredient for one's happiness in a married life. Those who over-indulge can become
slaves to sex which would ultimately ruin love and humane consideration in marriage.
As in everything, one must be temperate and rational in one's sexual demands taking
into consideration one another's intimate feelings and temperament.
Marriage
is a bond of partnership for life entered into by a man and a woman. Patience,
tolerance and understanding are the three principal qualities that should be developed
and nurtured by the couple. Whilst love should be the knot tying the couple together,
material necessities for sustaining a happy home should be made available by the
male partner for the couple to share. The qualification for a good partnership
in marriage should be 'ours' and not 'yours' or 'mine' . A good couple should
'open' their hearts to one another and to refrain from entertaining 'secrets'.
Keeping secrets to oneself could lead to suspicion and suspicion is the element
that could destroy love in a partnership. Suspicion breeds jealousy, jealousy
creates anger, anger develops hatred, hatred turns into enmity and enmity could
cause untold suffering including bloodshed, suicide and even murder.
Part
Five
A Religion For Real Human Progress
Chapter 13
Nature, Value
And Choice Of Religious Beliefs
Man and Religion
Man is the only living
being in this world who has discovered religion and performs worship and prayer.
Man developed religion in order to satisfy his desire to understand the life
within him and the world outside him. The earliest religions had animistic origins,
and they arose out of man's fear of the unknown and his desire to placate the
forces which he thought inhabited inanimate objects. Over time these religions
underwent changes, being shaped by the geographical, historical, socio-economic,
political and intellectual environment existing at that time.
Many of these
religions have become organized and are flourishing to this day, backed by a strong
following of devotees. Many people are drawn to organized religions because of
the pomp and ceremony, while there are some who prefer to practice their own personal
religion, inwardly venerating their religious teachers and applying moral principles
in their daily life. Because of the importance of practice, every religion claims
to be a way of life, not merely a faith. In view of their various origins and
paths of development which religions undergo, it is hardly surprising that the
religions of man should differ in their approach, the understanding and interpretation
of their followers, their goal and how it can be achieved, and their concept of
reward and punishment for deeds performed.
In terms of approach, religious
practices may be based on faith, fear, rationality or harmlessness: Faith forms
the basis of many religious practises which were developed to overcome man's fear
and to meet his needs. A religion of miraculous or mystical powers exploits that
fear which arises from ignorance and makes promises of material gain based on
greed. A religion of devotion is based on emotion and the fear of the supernatural
which, it is so believed, can be appeased through rites and rituals. A religion
of faith is based on the desire for gaining confidence in the face of the uncertainty
of human life and destiny.
Some religious practices grew as a result of the
development of man's knowledge, experience and wisdom. The rational approach to
religion had been adopted in this case, incorporating the principles of human
value and natural or universal laws. It is based on humanism and concentrates
on the cultivation of humane qualities. A religion of cause and effect or kamma
is based on the principle of self-help and assumes that the individual alone is
responsible for his own happiness and suffering as well as salvation. A religion
of wisdom is based on the application of reason and seeks to understand life and
the reality of worldly conditions through analytical knowledge.
Harmlessness
and goodwill are common elements found in religion. A religion of peace is based
on the principle of causing no harm to oneself as well as others, and its followers
are to cultivate a harmonious, liberal and peaceful life. A religion of goodwill
or loving-kindness is based on the sacrifice and service for the welfare and happiness
of others.
Religions differ according to the understanding capacity of their
followers and the interpretation which religious authorities give to the religious
doctrines and practices. In some religions, codes, while in others they only provide
advice on the need and the way to follow these codes. Every religion will offer
reasons to explain the existing human problems and inequalities and the way to
remedy the situation. By way of explanation, some religions claim that man has
to face these problems because he is on trial in this world. When such an explanation
is given, another may ask, 'For what purpose? How can a man be judged on the basis
of just one life when human beings generally differ in their experiences of physical,
intellectual, social, economic and environmental factors and conditions?'
Every
religion has its own concept of what is regarded to be the goal of spiritual life.
For some religions, eternal life in heaven or paradise with the Lord is the final
goal. For some the ultimate aim in life is the union of universal consciousness,
because it is believed that life is a unit of consciousness and it must return
to the same original consciousness. Some religions believe that the ending of
suffering or repeated birth and death is the final goal. For others, even heavenly
bliss or union with Brahma (creator) is secondary to the uncertainty of existence,
no matter, whatever form it takes. And there are even some who believe that the
present life itself is more than enough to experience the aim of life.
To
attain the desired goal, every religion offers a method. Some religions ask their
followers to surrender to God or depend on God for everything. Others call for
stringent asceticism as the means of purging oneself of all evil through self
mortification. Some others recommend the performance of animal sacrifices and
many kinds of rites and rituals as well as the recital of mantras for their purification
to gain the final goal. There is yet another which upholds diverse methods and
devotions, intellectual realization of truth, and concentration of the mind through
meditation.
Each religion has a different concept of punishment for evil deeds.
According to some religions, man is doomed forever by God for his transgressions
in this one life. Some others say that action and reaction(cause and effect)operate
due to natural laws and the effect of a deed will only be experienced for a certain
period. Some religions maintain that this life is only one of so many, and a person
will always have chance to reform himself in stages until he finally evolves to
attain the goal of Supreme Bliss.
Given such a wide variety of approaches,
interpretations and goals of different religions adopted by mankind, it is useful
for people not to hold dogmatic views about their religion but to be open to and
tolerant of other religious views.
The Buddha said: 'One must not accept my
teachings from reverence, but first try them as gold is tried by fire.'
After
emphasizing the importance of maintaining an open mind towards religious doctrines,
it is useful to remember that a religion should be practised for the welfare ,
freedom and happiness of all living beings. That is, religious principles should
be used positively to improve the quality of life of all beings. Yet today, humankind
is corrupted and has gone astray from basic religious principles. Immoral and
evil practices have become common among many people, and religious-minded people
experience difficulties trying to maintain certain religious principles in modern
life. At the same time, the standard of basic religious principles is also lowered
to pander to the demands of polluted and selfish minds. Man should not violate
universal moral codes to suit his own greed or indulgence; rather man should try
to adjust himself according to these codes taught by religion. Religious precepts
have been introduced by enlightened religious teachers who have realized the noble
way of life which leads to peace and happiness. Those who violate these precepts
transgress the universal laws, which, according to Buddhism will bring bad effects
through the working of moral causation.
This does not mean, on the other hand,
that a person should slavishly follow what is found in his religion, regardless
of its applicability to modern times. Religious laws and precepts should enable
people to lead a meaningful life, and are not to be used to bind them to archaic
practices and superstitious rituals and beliefs. A person who upholds the basic
religious principles should give credit to human intelligence and live respectably
with human dignity. There must be some changes in our religious activities to
correspond to our education and the nature of our changing society, without at
the same time sacrificing the noble universal principles. But it is recognized
that making changes to any religious practices is always difficult because many
conservative people are opposed to changes, even if they are for the better. Such
conservative views are like a stagnant pool of water, while fresh ideas are like
the waterfall where the water is constantly being renewed and is, therefore, usable.
Distortion of Religion
Despite
the value of religion in moral upliftment, it is also true to say that religion
is a fertile soil for the development of superstitions and devotional hypocrisy,
wrapped under the cloak of religiosity. Many people use religion to escape from
the realities of life and put on the garb of religion and religious symbols. They
may even pray very often in places of worship, yet they are not sincerely religious
minded and have not understood what religion stands for. When a religion has been
debased by ignorance, greed for power and selfishness, people quickly point an
accusing finger and say that religion is irrational. But 'Religion'(the ritualistic
external practice of any teaching)must be distinguished from the teaching itself.
Before one criticizes, one must study the original teachings of the founder and
see it there is anything intrinsically wrong with it.
Religion advise people
to do good and be good, but they are not interested in acting thus. Instead they
prefer to cling to the other practices which have no real religious values. Had
they tried to culture their minds by eradicating jealousy, pride, cruelty and
selfishness, at least they would have found the correct way to practise a religion.
Unfortunately, they develop jealousy, pride, cruelty and selfishness instead of
eradicating them. Many people pretend to be religious, but commit the greatest
atrocities in the name of religion. They fight, discriminate and create unrest
for the sake of religion, losing sight of its lofty purpose. From the increase
in the performance of various so-called religious activities, we may get the impression
that religion is progressing, but the opposite is really the case since very little
mental purity and understanding are actually being practised.
Practising a
religion is nothing than the development of one's inner awareness, goodwill and
understanding. Problems would have to be faced squarely by relying on one's spiritual
strength. Running away from one's problems in the name of spiritualism is not
courageous, much less to be regarded as spiritual. Under today's chaotic conditions,
men and women are rapidly sliding downhill to their own destruction. They irony
is that they imagine they are progressing towards a glorious civilization that
is yet to be realized.
In the midst of this confusion, imaginary and plastic
religious concepts are propagated to create more temptation and confusion in man's
mind. Religion is being misused for personal gain and power. Certain immoral practices,
such as free sex, have been encouraged by some irresponsible religious groups
to introduce their religion among youths. By arousing lustful feelings, these
groups hope to seduce boys and girls into following their religion. Today religion
has degenerated into a cheap commodity in the religious market giving scant regard
to moral values and what they stand for. Some missionaries claim that the practice
of morals, ethics and precepts are not important as long as a person has faith
and prays to God, which is believed to be sufficient to grant him salvation. Having
witnessed how some religious authorities have misled and blindfolded their followers
in Europe, Karl Marx made a caustic remark: 'Religion is the sigh of the oppressed
creature, the feelings of a heartless world, just as it is the soul of soulless
conditions. It is the opium of the people.'
Man needs a religion not for the
reason of giving him a dream for his next life or providing him with some dogmatic
ideas to follow, in such a way that he surrenders his human intelligence and becomes
a nuisance to his fellow beings. A religion should be a reliable and reasonable
method for people to live 'here and now' as cultured, understanding beings, while
setting a good example for others to follow. Many religions turn man's thoughts
away from himself towards a supreme being, but Buddhism directs man's search for
peace inward to the potentialities that lie hidden within himself. 'Dhamma'(meaning,
to hold on)is not something a person searches outside himself, because in the
final analysis, man is Dhammaand Dhammais man. Therefore, true religion, which
is Dhamma,is not something outside us that we acquire, but the cultivation and
realization of wisdom, compassion and purity that we develop within ourselves.
Which is the Proper Religion?
If
any religion has the Four Noble Truths and the Eightfold Path, then it can be
regarded as a proper religion.
It is a very difficult for a man to find out
why there are so many different religions, and which religion is the true one.
Followers of every religion are trying to show the superiority of their religion.
Diversity has created some uniformity, but in matters of religion, men took upon
each other with jealousy, hatred and disdain. The most respected religious practices
in one religion are deemed ridiculous to others. To introduce their divine and
peaceful messages some people have to resorted to weapons and wars. Have they
polluted the good name of religion? It seems that certain religions are responsible
for dividing instead of uniting mankind.
To find a true and proper religion,
we must weigh with an unbiased mind what exactly is a false religion. False religion
or philosophies include: materialism which denies survival after death; amoralism
which denies good and evil; any religion which asserts that man is miraculously
saved or doomed; theistic evolution which holds that everything is preordained
and everyone is destined to attain eventual salvation through mere faith.
Buddhism
is free from unsatisfactory and uncertain foundations. Buddhism is realistic and
verifiable. Its Truths have been verified by the Buddha, verified by His disciples,
and always remain open to be verified by anyone who wishes to do so. And today,
the Teachings of the Buddha, are being verified by the most severe methods of
scientific investigation.
The Buddha advises that any form of religion is
proper if it contains the Four Noble Truths and the Noble Eightfold Path. This
clearly shows that the Buddha did not want to form a particular religion. What
He wanted was to reveal the Ultimate Truth of our life and the world. Although
the Buddha expounded the Four Noble Truths and the Eightfold Noble Path, this
method is not the property of Buddhists alone. This is universal Truth.
Most
people find it necessary to put forth arguments to 'prove' the validity of the
religion that they are following. Some claim that their religion is the oldest
and therefore contains the truth. Others claim that their religion is the latest
or newest and therefore contains the truth. Some claim that their religion has
the most followers and therefore contains the truth. Yet none of these arguments
are valid to establish the truth of a religion. One can judge the value of a religion
by using only common sense and understanding.
Some religious traditions require
man to be subservient to a greater power than himself, a power which controls
his creation, his actions and his final deliverance. The Buddha did not accept
such powers. Rather, He assigned to man that very power by asserting that each
man is his own creator, responsible for his own salvation. That is why it is said
that 'There is none so godless as the Buddha and yet none so godlike'. The religion
of the Buddhists gives man a great sense of dignity; at the same time it also
gives him great responsibility. A Buddhist cannot put the blame on an external
power when evil befalls him. But he can face misfortune with equanimity because
he knows that he has the power to extricate himself from all misery.
One of
the reason why Buddhism appeals to intellectuals and those with a good education,
is that the Buddha expressly discouraged His followers from accepting anything
they heard(even if it came from Himself)without first testing its validity. The
teachings of the Buddha have remained and survived precisely because many intellectuals
have challenged every aspect of the teachings and have concluded that the Buddha
had always spoken the undeniable Truth. While other religionists are trying to
'reassess' their founder's teachings in the light of modern knowledge about the
Universe, the Buddha's teaching are being verified by scientists.
Moral and Spiritual Development
Without
a spiritual background man has no moral responsibility: man without moral responsibility
poses a danger to society.
Buddhism has been an admirable lighthouse for guiding
many a devotee to the salvation of eternal bliss. Buddhism is especially needed
in the world today which is riddled with racial, economic and ideological misunderstandings.
These misunderstandings can never be effectively cleared until the spirit of benevolent
tolerance is extended towards others. This spirit can be best cultivated under
the guidance of Buddhism which inculcates an ethical moral co-operation for universal
good.
We know that it is easy to learn vice without a master, whereas virtue
requires a tutor. There is a very great need for the teaching of virtue by precepts
and examples.
Without a spiritual background, man has no moral responsibility;
man without moral responsibility poses danger to society.
In the Buddha's
Teaching, it is said that the spiritual development of man is more important than
the development of material welfare. History has taught us that we cannot expect
to gain both worldly happiness and everlasting Happiness at the same time.
The
lives of most people are generally regulated by spiritual values and moral principles
which only religion can effectively provide. The governmental interference in
the lives of people is made comparatively unnecessary if men and women can be
made to realize the value of devotion and can practise the ideals of truth, justice
and service.
Virtue is necessary to attain salvation, but virtue alone is
not enough. Virtue must be combined with wisdom. Virtue and wisdom are like the
pair of wings of a bird. Wisdom can also be compared to the eyes of a man; virtue,
to his feet. Virtue can be likened to a vehicle that brings man up to the gate
of salvation. But wisdom is the actually key that opens the gate. Virtue is a
part of the technique of skillful and noble living. Without any ethical discipline,
there cannot be a purification of the defilements of sentient existence.
Buddhism
is not mere mumbo-jumbo, a myth told to entertain the human mind or to satisfy
the human emotion, but a liberal and noble method for those who sincerely want
to understand and experience the reality of life.
The God-Idea
The reality or validity
of belief in God is based on man's understanding capacity and the maturity of
the mind.
The Development of the God-idea
To trace the origin and
development of the God-idea, one must go back to the time when civilization was
still in its infancy and modern science was still unknown. Primitive people, out
of fear of and admiration towards natural phenomena, had believed in different
spirits and gods. They used their belief in spirit and gods to form religions
of their own. According to their respective circumstances and understanding capacity
different people worshipped different gods and founded different faiths.
At
the beginning of the God-idea, people worshipped many gods--gods of trees, streams,
lightning, storm, winds, the sun and all other terrestrial phenomena. These gods
were related to each and every act of nature. Then gradually man began to attribute
to these gods, sex and form as well as the physical and mental characteristics
of human beings. Human attributes were given to the gods: love, hate, jealousy,
fear, pride, envy and other emotions found among human beings. From all these
gods, there slowly grew a realization that the phenomena of the universe were
not many but were One. This understanding gave rise to the monotheistic god of
recent ages.
In the process of development, the God-idea went through a variety
of changing social and intellectual climates. It was regarded by different men
in different ways. Some idealized god as the King of Heaven and Earth; they had
a conception of god as a person. Others thought of god as an abstract principle.
Some raised the ideal of Supreme deity to the highest heaven, while others brought
it down to the lowest depths of the earth. Some pictured god in a paradise, while
others made an idol and worshipped it. Some want so far as to say that there is
no salvation without god?no matter how much good you do, you will not receive
the fruits of your actions unless you act out of a faith in god. The Atheists
said, 'No' and went on to affirm that god did not really exist at all. The Skeptics
or Agnostics said, 'We do not or we cannot know.' The Positivists say that the
God-idea was a meaningless problem since the idea of the term god 'was not clear'.
Thus there grew a variety of ideas and beliefs and names for the God-idea: pantheism,
idolatry, belief in a formless god, and belief in many gods and goddesses.
Even
the monotheistic god of recent times has gone through a variety of changes as
it passed through different nations and people. The Hindu god is quite different
from gods of other faiths. Thus numerous religions came into existence: each one
differed greatly from the other in the end, and each one says that 'God is One'.
The God-idea and Creation
As
each religion came into existence and developed around the God-idea, religion
developed its own particular explanation of creation. Thus the God-idea became
associated with various myths. People used the God-idea as a vehicle for their
explanation of the existence of man and the nature of the universe.
Today,
intelligent men, who have carefully reviewed all the available facts, have come
to the conclusion that, like the God-idea, the creation of myths must be regarded
as an evolution of the human imagination which began with the misunderstanding
of the phenomena of nature. These misunderstandings were rooted in the fear and
ignorance of primitive man. Even today, man still retains his primitive interpretations
of creation. In the light of recent, scientific thinking, the theological definition
of god is vague and hence has no place in the contemporary creation theories or
myths.
If man is created by an external source, then he must belong to that
source and not to himself. According to Buddhism, man is responsible for everything
he does. Thus Buddhists have no reason to believe that man came into existence
in the human form through any external sources. They believe that man is here
today because of his own action. He is neither punished nor rewarded by anyone
but himself according to his own good and bad action. In the process of evolution,
the human being came into existence. However, there are no Buddha-words to support
the belief that the world was created by anybody. The scientific discovery of
gradual development of the world-system conforms with the Buddha's Teachings.
Human Weakness and the Concept
of God
Both the concept of God and its associated creation myths have been
protected and defended by believers who need these ideas to justify their existence
and usefulness to human society. All the believers claim to have received their
respective scriptures as Revelation; in other words, they all profess to come
directly from the one God. Each God-religion claims that it stands for Universal
Peace and Universal Brotherhood and other such high ideals.
However great
the ideals of the religious might be, the history of the world shows that the
religions up to the present day have also helped in spreading superstitions. Some
have stood against science and the advancement of knowledge, leading to ill-feelings,
murders and wars. In this respect, the God-religions have failed in their attempt
to enlighten mankind. For example, in certain countries when people pray for mercy,
their hands are stained with the blood of the morbid sacrifices of innocent animals
and sometimes, even fellow human beings. These poor and helpless creatures were
slaughtered at the desecrated altars of imaginary and imperceptible gods. It has
taken a long time for people to understand the futility of such cruel practices
in the name of religion. The time has come for them to realize that the path of
real purification is through love and understanding.
Dr. G. Dharmasiri in
his book 'Buddhist critique of the Christian Concept of God' has mentioned, 'I
see that though the notion of God contains sublime moral strands, it also has
certain implications that are extremely dangerous to the humans as well as to
the other beings on this planet.
'One major threat to humanity is the blindfold
called 'authority' imposed on the humans by the concept of God. All theistic religions
consider authority as ultimate and sacred. It was this danger that the Buddha
was pointing at in the Kalama Sutta. At the moment, human individuality and freedom
are seriously threatened by various forms of authorities. Various 'authorities'
have been trying to make 'you' a follower. On top of all our 'traditional' authorities,
a new form of authority has emerged in the name of 'science'. And lately, the
mushrooming new religions and the menace of the Gurus(as typified by Jim Jones),
have become live threats to the individual's human freedom and dignity. The Buddha's
eternal plea is for you to become a Buddha, and He showed, in a clearly rational
way, that each and every one of us has the perfect potentiality and capacity to
attain that ideal.'
God-religions offer no salvation without God. Thus a man
might conceivably have climbed to the highest pinnacle of virtue, and he might
have led a righteous way of life, and he might even have climbed to the highest
level of holiness, yet he is to be condemned to eternal hell just because he did
not believe in the existence of God. On the other hand, a man might have sinned
deeply and yet, having made a late repentance, he can be forgiven and therefore
'saved'. From the Buddhist point of view, there is no justification in this kind
of doctrine.
Despite the apparent contradictions of the God-religions, it
is not deemed advisable to preach a Godless doctrine since the belief in god has
also done a tremendous service to mankind, especially in places where the god
concept is desirable. This belief in god has helped mankind to control his animal
nature. And much help has been granted to others in the name of god. At the same
time, man feels insecure without the belief in god. He finds protection and inspiration
when that belief is in his mind. The reality or validity of such a belief is based
on man's understanding capacity and spiritual maturity.
However, religion
should also concern our practical life. It is to be used as a guide to regulate
our conduct in the world. Religion tells us what to do and what not to do. If
we do not follow a religion sincerely, mere religious labels or belief in god
do not serve us in our daily life.
On the other hand, if the followers of
various religions are going to quarrel and to condemn other beliefs and practices?especially
to prove or disprove the existence of God?and if they are going to harbor anger
towards other religions because of their different religious views, then they
are creating enormous disharmony amongst the various religious communities. Whatever
religious difference we have, it is our duty to practise tolerance, patience and
understanding. It is our duty to respect the other man's religious belief even
if we cannot accommodate it; tolerance is necessary for the sake of harmonious
and peaceful living.
However, it does not serve any purpose to introduce this
concept of god to those who are not ready to appreciate it. To some people this
belief is not important to lead a righteous life. There are many who lead a noble
life without such belief while amongst believers there are many who violate the
peace and happiness of innocent people.
Buddhists can also co-operate with
those who hold this concept of god, if they use this concept for the peace, happiness
and welfare of mankind but not with those who abuse this concept by threatening
people in order to introduce this belief just for their own benefit and with ulterior
motives.
For more than 2,500 years, all over the world, Buddhists have practised
and introduced Buddhism very peacefully without the necessity of sustaining the
concept of a creator of God. And they will continue to sustain this religion in
the same manner without disturbing the followers of other religions.
Therefore,
with due respect to other religionists, it must be mentioned that any attempt
to introduce this concept into Buddhism is unnecessary. Let Buddhists maintain
their belief since it is harmless to others and, let the basic Teachings of the
Buddha remain.
From time immemorial, Buddhists have led a peaceful religious
life without incorporating the particular concept of God. They should be capable
of sustaining their particular religion without the necessity, at this juncture,
of someone trying to force something down their throats against their will. Having
full confidence in their Buddha Dhamma, Buddhists should be permitted to work
and seek their own salvation without any undue interference from other sources.
Others can uphold their beliefs and concepts, Buddhist will uphold theirs, without
any rancor. We do not challenge others in regard to their religious persuasions,
we expect reciprocal treatment in regard to our own beliefs and practices.
Changing of Religious Label Before Death
Merely
to believe that there is someone to wash away our sins without suppressing our
evil state of mind, is not in accordance with the Teachings of the Buddha.
Very
often we come across cases of people who change their religion at the last moment
when they are about to die. By embracing another religion, some people are under
the mistaken belief that they can 'wash away their sins' and gain an easy passage
to heaven. They also hope to ensure themselves a simple and better burial. For
people who have been living a whole life-time with a particular religion, to suddenly
embrace a religion which is totally new and unfamiliar and to expect an immediate
salvation through their new faith is indeed very far-fetched. This is only a dream.
Some people are even known to have been converted into another faith when they
are in a state of unconsciousness and in come cases, even posthumously. Those
who are over zealous and crazy about converting others into their faith, have
misled uneducated people into believing that theirs is the one and only faith
with an easy method or short-cut to heaven. If people are led to believe that
there is someone sitting somewhere up there who can wash away all the sins committed
during a life-time, then this belief will only encourage others to commit evil.
According to the Teachings of the Buddha there is no such belief that there
is someone who can wash away sins. It is only when people sincerely realize that
what they are doing are wrong and after having realized this, try to mend their
ways and do good that they can suppress or counter the bad reactions that would
accrue to them for the evil they had committed.
It has become a common sight
in many hospitals to see purveyors of some religions hovering around the patients
promising them 'life after death'. This is exploiting the basic ignorance and
psychological fear of the patients. If they really want to help, then they must
be able to work the 'miracles' they so proudly claim lies in their holy books.
If they can work miracles, we will not need hospitals. Buddhists must never become
victims to these people. They must learn the basic teachings of their noble religion
which tells them that all suffering is the basic lot of mankind. The only way
to end suffering is by purifying the mind. The individual creates his own suffering
and it is he alone who can end it. One cannot hope to eradicate the consequences
of one's evil actions simply by changing one's religious label at the door-step
of death.
A dying man's destiny in his next life depends on the last thoughts
which appear to him according to the good and bad kammahe had accumulated during
his current lifetime, irrespective of what type of religious label he prefers
to do himself at the last moment.
Short-cut to Paradise
Paradise is open not
only to the followers of a particular religion, but it is open to each and every
person who leads a righteous and noble way of life.
There is no difficulty
at all for Buddhists to go to heaven if they really want to. But there are some
people who go from house to house trying to convert other religionists into their
faith and promising them the heaven they carry in their bags. They claim that
they are the only blessed people who can go to heaven; they also claim that they
have the exclusive authority to send others to the same goal. They introduce their
religion like a patent medicine and this has become a nuisance to the public today.
Many innocent people who lack the knowledge of their own religion, have become
victims of these paradise sellers.
If Buddhists can understand the value of
the Noble Teachings of the Buddha, they will not be misled by such people. These
paradise sellers are also trying to mislead the people by saying that this world
which is created by god, is going to end very soon. Those who want to have a wonderful
everlasting life in heaven must accept their particular religion before the end
of the world comes, otherwise people would miss this golden opportunity and would
have to suffer in eternal hell.
This threat of the end of the world, had been
going on for hundreds of years. The wonder of it all is that there are still people
today who believe in such a treat which is irrational and imaginary. Some people
get converted after hearing such preaching, without using their common sense.
In Buddhism, there is no personal judge either to condemn or to reward but
only the working of an impersonal moral causation and natural law.
Why
wicked people enjoy while good people suffer
Some people ask, 'If good begets
good and bad begets bad why should many good people suffer and some wicked people
prosper in this world? ' The answer to this question, according to the Buddhist
point of view, is that although some are good by nature, they have not accumulated
enough good merits in their previous birth to compensate for the bad effects of
unwholesome kamma in this present life; somewhere in their past there must have
been some defect. On the other hand, some are wicked by nature and yet are able
to enjoy this life for a short period of due to some strong good kamma that they
accumulated in their previous birth.
For example, there are certain people
who by nature have inherited a strong constitution and as a result enjoy perfect
health. Their physical power of resistance is strong and hence they are not prone
to illnesses. Although they do not take special precautions to lead a hygienic
life, they are able to remain strong and healthy. On the other hand, there are
others who take various tonics and vitamin?enriched foods to fortify themselves,
but in spite of their efforts to become strong and healthy, their health do not
show any improvement.
Whatever good and bad deeds people commit within this
life-time, they will definitely experience the reaction within this life or hereafter.
It is impossible to escape from their results simply by praying, but by cultivating
the mind and leading a noble life.
Buddhists are encouraged to do good deeds
not for the sake of gaining a place in heaven. They are expected to do good in
order to eradicate their selfishness and to experience peace and happiness.
Chapter 14
Promoter of True Human Culture
Modern Religion
Buddhism
is strong enough to face any modern views which pose a challenge to religion.
Buddhist ideas have greatly contributed to the enrichment of both ancient
and modern thought. Its teaching of causation and relativism, its doctrine of
sense data, its pragmatism, its emphasis on the moral, its non-acceptance of a
permanent soul, its unconcern about external supernatural forces, its denial of
unnecessary rites and religious rituals, its appeal to reasoning and experience
and its compatibility with modern scientific discoveries all tend to establish
its superior claim to modernity.
Buddhism is able to meet all the requirements
of a rational religion that suit the needs of the future world. It is so scientific,
so rational, so progressive that it will be a pride for a man in the modern world
to call himself a Buddhist. In fact, Buddhism is more scientific in approach than
science; it is more socialistic than socialism.
Among all the great founders
of religion, it was the Buddha alone who encouraged the spirit of investigation
among His followers and who advised them not to accept even His Teaching with
blind faith. Therefore, it is no exaggeration to say that Buddhism can be called
a modern religion.
Buddhism is a well-elaborated scheme of how to lead a practical
life and a carefully thought-out system of self-culture. But more than that, it
is a scientific method of education. This religion is best able in any crisis
to restore our peace of mind and to help us to face calmly whatever changes the
future may have in store.
Without sensual pleasure, would life be endurable?
Without belief in immortality, can man be moral? Without resorting to divinity,
can man advance towards righteousness? YES, is the answer given by Buddhism. These
ends can be attained by knowledge and by the purification of the mind. Knowledge
is the key to the higher path. Purification is that which brings calmness and
peace to life and renders man indifferent to and detached from the vagaries of
the phenomenal world.
Buddhism is truly a religion suited to the modern, scientific
world. The light which comes from nature, from science, from history, from human
experience, from every point of the universe, is radiant with the Noble Teachings
of the Buddha.
Religion in a Scientific Age
Religion
without science is crippled, while science without religion is blind.
Today
we live in a scientific age in which almost every aspect of our lives has been
affected by science. Since the scientific revolution during the seventeenth century,
science has continued to exert tremendous influence on what we think and do.
The
impact of science has been particularly strong on traditional religious beliefs.
Many basic religious concepts are crumbling under the pressure of modern science
and are no longer acceptable to the intellectual and the well-informed man. No
longer is it possible to assert truth derived merely through theological speculations
or based on the authority of religious scriptures in isolation to scientific consideration.
For example, the findings of modern psychologists indicate that the human mind,
like the physical body, work according to natural, causal laws without the presence
of an unchanging soul as taught by some religions.
Some religionists choose
to disregard scientific discoveries which conflict with their religious dogmas.
Such rigid mental habits are indeed a hindrance to human progress. Since the modern
man refuses to believe anything blindly, even though it had been traditionally
accepted, such religionists will only succeed in increasing the ranks of non-believers
with their faulty theories.
On the other hand, some religionists have found
it necessary to accommodate popularly accepted scientific theories by giving new
interpretations to their religious dogmas. A case in point is Darwin's Theory
of Evolution. Many religionists maintain that man was directly created by God.
Darwin, on the other hand, claimed that man had evolved from the ape, a theory
which upset the doctrines of divine creation and the fall of man. Since all enlightened
thinkers have accepted Darwin's theory, the theologians today have little choice
except to give a new interpretation to their doctrines to suit this theory which
they had opposed for so long.
In the light of modern scientific discoveries,
it is not difficult to understand that many of the views held in many religions
regarding the universe and life are merely conventional thoughts of that which
have long been superseded. It is generally true to say that religions have greatly
contributed to human development and progress. They have laid down values and
standards and formulated principles to guide human life. But for al the good they
have done, religions can no longer survive in the modern, scientific age if the
followers insist on imprisoning truth into set forms and dogmas, on encouraging
ceremonies and practices which have been depleted of their original meaning.
Buddhism
and Science
Until the beginning of the last century, Buddhism was confined
to countries untouched by modern science. Nevertheless, from its very beginning,
the Teachings of the Buddha were always open to scientific thinking.
One reason
why the Teaching can easily be embraced by the scientific spirit is that the Buddha
never encouraged rigid, dogmatic belief. He did not claim to base His Teachings
on faith, belief, or divine revelation, but allowed great flexibility and freedom
of thought.
The second reason is that the scientific spirit can be found in
the Buddha's approach to spiritual Truth. The Buddha's method for discovering
and testing spiritual Truth is very similar to that of the scientist. A scientist
observes the external world objectively, and would only establish a scientific
theory after conducting many successful practical experiments.
Using a similar
approach 25 centuries ago, the Buddha observed the inner world with detachment,
and encouraged His disciples not to accept any teaching until they had critically
investigated and personally verified its truth. Just as the scientist today would
not claim that his experiment cannot be duplicated by others, the Buddha did not
claim that His experience of Enlightenment was exclusive to Him. Thus, in His
approach to Truth, the Buddha was as analytical as the present day scientist.
He established a practical, scientifically worked-out method for reaching the
Ultimate Truth and the experience of Enlightenment.
While Buddhism is very
much in line with the scientific spirit, it is not correct to equate Buddhism
with science. It is true that the practical applications of science have enabled
mankind to live more comfortable lives and experience wonderful things undreamed
of before. Science has made it possible for man to swim better than the fishes,
fly higher than the birds, and walk on the moon. Yet the sphere of knowledge acceptable
to conventional, scientific wisdom is confined to empirical evidence. And scientific
truth is subject to constant change. Science cannot give man control over his
mind and neither does it offer moral control and guidance. Despite its wonders,
science has indeed many limitations not shared by Buddhism.
Limitations
of Science
Often one hears so much about science and what it can do, and so
little about what it cannot do. Scientific knowledge is limitedto the data received
through the sense organs. It does not recognize reality which transcends sense-data.
Scientific truth is built upon logical observations of sense-data which are continually
changing. Scientific truth is, therefore, relative truth not intended to stand
the test of time. And a scientist, being aware of this fact, is always willing
to discard a theory if it can be replaced by a better one.
Science attempts
to understand the outer world and has barely scratched the surface of man's inner
world. Even the science of psychology has not really fathomed the underlying cause
of man's mental unrest. When a man is frustrated and disgusted with life, and
his inner world is filled with disturbances and unrest, science today is very
much unequipped to help him.. The social sciences which cater for man's environment
may bring him a certain degree of happiness. But unlike an animal man requires
more than mere physical comfort and needs help to cope with his frustrations and
miseries arising from his daily experiences.
Today so many people are plagued
with fear, restlessness, and insecurity. Yet science fails to succor them. Science
is unable to teach the common man to control his mind when he is driven by the
animal nature that burns within him.
Can science make man better? If it can,
why do violent acts and immoral practices abound in countries which are so advanced
in science? Isn't it fair to say that despite all the scientific progress achieved
and the advantages conferred on man, science leaves the inner man basically unchanged:
it has only heightened man's feelings of dependence and insufficiency? In addition
to its failure to bring security to mankind, science has also made everyone feel
even more insecure by threatening the world with the possibility of wholesale
destruction.
Science is unable to provide a meaningful purpose of life. It
cannot provide man clear reasons for living. In fact, science is thoroughly secular
in nature and unconcerned with man's spiritual goal. The materialism inherent
in scientific thought denies the psyche goals higher than material satisfaction.
By its selective theorizing and relative truths, science disregards some of the
most essential issues and leaves many questions unanswered. For instance, when
asked why great inequalities exist among men, no scientific explanation can be
given to such questions which are beyond its narrow confines.
Learned
Ignorance
The transcendental mind developed by the Buddha is not limited to
sense-data and goes beyond the logic trapped within the limitation of relative
perception. The human intellect, on the contrary, operates on the basis of information
it collects and stores, whether in the field of religion, philosophy, science
or art. The information for the mind is gathered through our sense organs which
are inferior in so many ways. The very limited information perceived makes our
understanding of the world distorted.
Some people are proud of the fact that
they know so much. In fact, the less we know, the more certain we are in our explanations;
the more we know, the more we realize our limitations.
A brilliant scholar
once wrote a book which he considered as the ultimate work. He felt that the book
contained all literary gems and philosophies. Being proud of his achievement,
he showed his masterpiece to a colleague of his who was equally brilliant with
the request that the book be reviewed by him. Instead, his colleague asked the
author to write down on a piece of paper all he knew and all he did not know.
The author sat down deep in thought, but after a long while failed write down
anything he knew. Then he turned his mind to the second question, and again he
failed to write down anything he did not know. Finally, with his ego at the lowest
ebb, he gave up, realizing that all that he knew was really ignorance.
In
this regard, Socrates, the well-known Athenian philosopher of the Ancient World,
had this to say when asked what he knew: 'I know only one thing--thatI do not
know.'
Beyond Science
Buddhism
goes beyond modern science in its acceptance of a wider field of knowledge than
is allowed by the scientific mind. Buddhism admits knowledge arising from the
sense organs as well as personal experiences gained through mental culture. By
training and developing a highly concentrated mind, religious experience can be
understood and verified. Religious experience is not something which can be understood
by conducting experiments in a test-tube or examined under a microscope.
The
truth discovered by science is relative and subject to changes, while that found
by the Buddha is final and absolute: the Truth of Dhamma does not change according
to time and space. Furthermore, in contrast to the selective theorizing of science,
the Buddha encouraged the wise not to cling to theories, scientific or otherwise.
Instead of theorizing, the Buddha taught mankind how to live a righteous life
so as to discover Ultimate Truth. By living a righteous life, by calming the sense,
and by casting off desires, the Buddha pointed the way through which we can discover
within ourselves the nature of life. And the real purpose of life can be found.
Practice is important in Buddhism. A person who studies much but does not
practise is like one who is able to recite recipes from a huge cookery-book without
trying to prepare a single dish. His hunger cannot be relieved by book knowledge
alone. Practice is such an important prerequisite of enlightenment that in some
schools of Buddhism, such as Zen, practice is put even ahead of knowledge.
The
scientific method is outwardly directed, and modern scientists exploit nature
and the elements for their own comfort, often disregarding the need to harmonize
with the environment and thereby polluting the world. In contrast, Buddhism is
inwardly directed and is concerned with the inner development of man. On the lower
level, Buddhism teaches the individual how to adjust and cope with events and
circumstances of daily life. At the higher level, it represents the human endeavor
to grow beyond oneself through the practice of mental culture or mind development.
Buddhism has a complete system of mental culture concerned with gaining insight
into the nature of things which leads to complete self-realization of the Ultimate
Truth--Nibbana. This system is both practical and scientific, it involves dispassionate
observation of emotional and mental states. More like a scientist than a judge,
a meditator observes the inner world with mindfulness.
Science
Without Religion
Without having moral ideals, science poses a dangerto all
mankind.Science has made the machine which in turn becomes king. The bullet and
bomb are gifts of science to the few in power on whom the destiny of the world
depends. Meanwhile the rest of mankind waits in anguish and fear, not knowing
when the nuclear weapons, the poisonous gases, the deadly arms--all fruits of
scientific research designed to kill efficiently--will be used on them. Not only
is science completely unable to provide moral guidance to mankind, it has also
fed fuel to the flame of human craving.
Science devoid of morality spells
only destruction: it becomes the draconian monster man discovered. And unfortunately,
this very monster is becoming more powerful than man himself. Unless man learns
to restrain and govern the monster through the practice of religious morality,
the monster will soon overpower him. Without religious guidance, science threatens
the world with destruction. In contrast, science when coupled with a religion
like Buddhism can transform this world into a haven of peace and security and
happiness.
Never was there a time when the co-operation between science and
religion is so desperately needed in the best interest and service of mankind.
Religion without science is crippled, while science without religion is blind.
Tribute to Buddhism
The wisdom of Buddhism founded on compassion has the
vital role of correcting the dangerous destination modern science is heading for.
Buddhism can provide the spiritual leadership to guide scientific research and
invention in promoting a brilliant culture of the future. Buddhism can provide
worthy goals for scientific advancement which is presently facing a hopeless impasse
of being enslaved by its very inventions.
Albert Einstein paid a tribute to
Buddhism when he said in his autobiography: 'If there is any religion that would
cope with modern scientific needs, it would be Buddhism'.Buddhism requires no
revision to keep it 'up to date' with recent scientific findings. Buddhism need
not surrender its views to science because it embraces science as well as goes
beyond science. Buddhism is the bridge between religious and scientific thoughts
by stimulating man to discover the latent potentialities within himself and his
environment. Buddhism is timeless!
Religion of Freedom
This is a religion of freedom and reason for
man to lead a noble life.
Buddhism does not prevent anyone from learning the
teachings of other religions. In fact, the Buddha encouraged His followers to
learn about other religions and to compare His Teachings with other teachings.
The Buddha says that if there are reasonable and rational teachings. The Buddha
says that if there are reasonable and rational teachings in other religions, His
followers are free to respect such teachings. It seems that certain religionists
try to keep their followers in the dark, some of them are not even allowed to
touch other religious objects or books. They are instructed not to listen to the
preachings of other religions. They are enjoined not to doubt the teachings of
their own religion, however unconvincing their teachings may appear to be. The
more they keep their followers on a one-track mind, the more easily they can keep
them under control. If anyone of them exercises freedom of thought and realizes
that he had been in the dark all the time, then it is alleged that the devil has
possessed his mind. The poor man is given no opportunity to use his common sense,
education, of his intelligence. Those who wish to change their views on religion
are taught to believe that they are not perfect enough to be allowed to use free
will in judging anything for themselves.
According to the Buddha, religion
should be left to one's own free choice. Religion is not a law, but a disciplinary
code which should be followed with understanding. To Buddhists true religious
principles are neither a divine law nor a human law, but a natural law.
In
actual fact, there is no real religious freedom in any part of the world today.
Man has not the freedom even to think freely. Whenever he realizes that he cannot
find satisfaction through his own religion to which he belongs, which cannot provide
him with satisfactory answers to certain questions, he has no liberty to give
it up and to accept another which appeals to him. The reason is that religious
authorities, leaders, and family members have taken that freedom away from him.
Man should be allowed to choose his religion which is in accordance with his own
conviction. One has no right to force another to accept a particular religion.
Some people surrender their religion for the sake of love, without a proper understanding
of their partner's religion. Religion should not be changed to suit man's emotions
and human weaknesses. One must think very carefully before changing one's religion.
Religion is not a subject for bargaining; one should not change one's religion
for personal, material gains. Religion is to be sued for spiritual development
and for self-salvation.
Buddhists never try to influence other religionists
to come and embrace their religion for material gain. Nor do they try to exploit
poverty, sickness, illiteracy and ignorance in order to increase the number of
Buddhist population. The Buddha advised those who indicated their wish to follow
Him, not to be hasty in accepting His Teachings. He advised them to consider carefully
His Teaching and to determine for themselves whether it was practical or not for
them to follow.
Buddhism teaches that mere belief or outward rituals are insufficient
for attaining wisdom and perfection. In this sense, outward conversion becomes
meaningless. To promote Buddhism by force would mean pretending to propagate justice
and love by means of oppression and injustice. It is of no importance to a follower
of the Buddha whether a person calls himself a Buddhist or not. Buddhists know
that only through man's understanding and exertion will they come nearer to the
goal preached by the Buddha.
Amongst the followers of every religion are some
fanatics. Religious fanaticism is dangerous. A fanatic is incapable of guiding
himself by reason or even by the scientific principles of observation and analysis.
According to the Buddha, a Buddhist must be a free man with an open mind and must
not be subservient to anyone for his spiritual development. He seeks refuge in
the Buddha by accepting Him as a source of supreme guidance and inspiration. He
seeks refuge in the Buddha, not blindly, but with understanding. To Buddhists,
the Buddha is not a savior nor is He an anthropomorphic being who claims to possess
the power of washing away other's sins. Buddhists regard the Buddha as a Teacher
who shows the Path to salvation.
Buddhism has always supported the freedom
and progress of mankind. Buddhism has always stood for the advancement of knowledge
and freedom for humanity in every sphere of life. There is nothing in the Buddha's
Teaching that has to be withdrawn in the face of modern, scientific inventions
and knowledge. The more new things that scientists discover, the closer they come
to the Buddha.
The Buddha emancipated man from the thralldom of religion.
He also released man from the monopoly and the tyranny of the priestcraft. It
was the Buddha who first advised man to exercise his reason and not to allow himself
to be driven meekly like dumb cattle, following the dogma of religion. The Buddha
stood for rationalism, democracy and practical, ethical conduct in religion. He
introduced this religion for people to practise with human dignity.
The followers
of the Buddha were advised not to believe anything without considering it properly.
In the Kalama Sutta,the Buddha gave the following guidelines to a group of young
people:
'Do not accept anything based upon mere reports,
traditions or
hearsay,
Nor upon the authority of religious texts,
Nor upon mere reasons
and arguments,
Nor upon one's own inference,
Nor upon anything which appears
to be true,
Nor upon one's own speculative opinion,
Nor upon another's
seeming ability,
Nor upon the consideration: 'This is our Teacher.'
'But,
when you know for yourselves the certain things are unwholesome and bad: tending
to harm yourself of others, reject them.
'And when you know for yourselves
that certain things are wholesome and good: conducive to the spiritual welfare
of yourself as well as others, accept and follow them.'
Buddhists are advised
to accept religious practices only after careful observation and analysis, and
only after being certain that the method agrees with reason and is conducive to
the good of one and all.
A true Buddhist does not depend on external powers
for his salvation. Nor does he expect to get rid of miseries through the intervention
of some unknown power. He must try to eradicate all his mental impurities to find
eternal Happiness. The Buddha says, 'If anyone were to speak ill of me, my teaching
and my disciples, do not be upset or perturbed, for this kind of reaction will
only cause you harm. On the other hand, if anyone were to speak well of me, my
teaching and my disciples, do not be over-joyed, thrilled or elated, for this
kind of reaction will only be an obstacle in forming a correct judgment. If you
are elated, you cannot judge whether the qualities praised are real and actually
found in us.'
(Brahma Jala Sutta)Such is the unbiased attitude of a genuine
Buddhist.
The Buddha had upheld the highest degree of freedom not only in
its human essence but also in its divine qualities. It is a freedom that does
not deprive man of his dignity. It is a freedom that releases one from slavery
to dogmas and dictatorial religious laws or religious punishments.
Buddhist Missionaries
'Go forth, O Bhikkhus,
for the good of the many, for the happiness of the many, out of compassion for
the world, for the good, benefit, and happiness of gods andmen.' (TheBuddha)
When
we turn the pages of the history of Buddhism, we learn that Buddhist missionaries
gave the noble message of the Buddha in a peaceful and respectable way. Such a
peaceful mission should put to shame those who have practised violent methods
in propagating their religions.
Buddhist missionaries do not compete with
other religionists in converting people in the market place. No Buddhist missionary
or monk would ever think of preaching ill-will against the so-called 'unbelievers'.
Religious, cultural and national intolerance are unbuddhistic in attitude, to
people who are imbued with the real Buddhist spirit. Aggression never finds approval
in the teachings of the Buddha. The world has bled and suffered enough from the
disease of dogmatism, religious fanaticism and intolerance. Whether in religion
or politics, people make conscious efforts to bring humanity to accept their own
way of life. In doing so, they sometimes show their hostility towards the followers
of other religions.
Buddhism had no quarrel with the national traditions and
customs, art and culture of the people who accepted it as a way of life but allowed
them to exist with refinement. The Buddha's message of love and compassion opened
the hearts of men and they willingly accepted the Teachings, thereby helping Buddhism
to become a world religion. Buddhist missionaries were invited by the independent
countries which welcomed them with due respect. Buddhism was never introduced
to any country through the influence of colonial or any other political power.
Buddhism was the first spiritual force known to us in history which drew closely
together large numbers of races which were separated by the most difficult barriers
of distance, language, culture and morals. Its motive was not the acquisition
of international commerce, empire-building or migratory impulse to occupy fresh
territory. Its aim was to show how people could gain more peace and happiness
through the practice of Dhamma.
A sparkling example of the qualities and approach
of a Buddhist missionary was Emperor Asoka. It was during Emperor Asoka's time
that Buddhism spread to many Asian and western countries. Emperor Asoka sent Buddhist
missionaries to many parts of the world to introduce the Buddha's message of peace.
Asoka respected and supported every religion at that time. His tolerance towards
other religions was remarkable. One of his scripts engraved in stone on Asoka
Pillars, and still standing today in India, says:
'One should not honour only
one's own religion and condemn the religion of others, but one should honor others'
religions for this or that reason. In so doing, one helps one's own religion to
grow and renders service to the religions of others too. In acting otherwise one
digs the grave of one's own religion and also does harm to other religions. Whosoever
honors his own religion and condemns other religions, does so indeed through devotion
to his own religion, thinking, 'I will glorify my own religion.' But on the contrary,
in so doing he injures his own religion more gravely, so concord is good. Let
all listen, and be willing to listen to the doctrines professed by others.'
In
268 B.C., he made the doctrines of the Buddha a living force in India. Hospitals,
social service institutions, universities for men and women, public wells and
recreation centers sprang up with this new movement, and the people thereby realized
the cruelty of senseless wars.
The golden era in the history of India and
the other countries of Asia--the period when art, culture, education and civilization
reached their zenith--occurred at the time when Buddhist influence was strongest
in these countries. Holy wars, crusades, inquisitions and religious discrimination
do not mar the annals of Buddhist countries. This is a noble history mankind can
rightly be proud of. The Great Nalanda University of India which flourished from
the second to the ninth century was a product of Buddhism. It was the first university
that we know of and which was opened to international students.
In the past,
Buddhism was able to make itself felt in many parts of the East, although communication
and transport were difficult and people had to cross hills and deserts. Despite
these difficult barriers Buddhism spread far and wide. Today, this peace message
is spreading in the West. Westerners are attracted to Buddhism and believe that
Buddhism is the only religion that is in harmony with modern science.
Buddhist
missionaries have no need or desire to convert those who already have a proper
religion to practise. If people are satisfied with their own religion, then, there
is no need for Buddhist missionaries to convert them. They give their full support
to missionaries of other faiths if their idea is to convert the wicked, evil,
and uncultured people to a religious way of life. Buddhists are happy to see the
progress of other religions so long as they truly help people to lead a religious
way of life according to their faith and enjoy peace, harmony and understanding.
On the other hand, Buddhist missionaries deplore the attitude of certain missionaries
who disturb the followers of other religions, since there is no reason for them
to create an unhealthy atmosphere of competition for converts if their aim is
only to teach people to lead a religious way of life.
In introducing Dhamma
to others, Buddhist missionaries have never tried to use imaginary exaggerations
depicting a heavenly life in order to attract human desire and arouse their craving.
Instead, they have tried to explain the real nature of human and heavenly life
as taught by the Buddha.
Chapter
15
War And Peace
Why is there no Peace?
Man
has forgotten that he has a heart. He forgets that if he treats the world kindly,
the world will treat him kindly in return.
We are living in a world of really
amazing contradictions. On the one hand, people are afraid of war; on the other
hand, they prepare for it with frenzy. They produce in abundance, but they distribute
miserly. The world becomes more and more crowded, but man becomes increasingly
isolated and lonely. Men are living close to each other as in a big family, but
each individual finds himself more than ever before, separated from his neighbor.
Mutual understanding and sincerity are lacking very badly. One man cannot trust
another, however good the latter may be.
When the United Nations was formed
after the horrors of the Second World War, the heads of Nations who gathered to
sign the charter agreed that it should begin with the following preamble: 'Since
it is in the minds of men that wars begin, it is in the minds of men the ramparts
of peace should be erected.'This very same sentiment is echoed in the first verse
of the Dhammapadawhich states: 'All[mental]states have mind as their forerunner,
mind is their chief, and they are mind-made. If one speaks or acts, with a defiled
mind, suffering follows one even as the wheel follows the hoof of the draught-ox.'
The belief that the only way to fight force is by applying more force has
led to the arms race between the great powers. And this competition to increase
the weapons of war has brought mankind to the very brink of total self-destruction.
If we do nothing about it, the next war will be the end of the world where there
will be neither victors nor victims?only dead bodies.
'Hatred does not cease
by hatred; by love alone does it cease.' Such is the Buddha's advice to those
who preach the doctrine of antagonism and ill-will, and who set men to war and
rebellion against one another. Many people say that the Buddha's advice to return
good for evil is impracticable. Actually, it is the only correct method to solve
any problem. This method was introduced by the great Teacher from His own experience.
Because we are proud and egoistic, we are reluctant to return good for evil, thinking
that the public may treat us as cowardly people. Some people even think that kindness
and gentleness are effeminate, not 'macho'! But what harm is there if we settle
our problems and bring peace and happiness by adopting this cultured method and
by sacrificing our dangerous pride?
Tolerance must be practised if peace is
to come to this earth. Force and compulsion will only create intolerance. To establish
peace and harmony among mankind, each and everyone must first learn to practise
the ways leading to the extinction of hatred, greed and delusion, the roots of
all evil forces. If mankind can eradicate these evil forces, tolerance and peace
will come to this restless world.
Today the follows of the most compassionate
Buddha have a special duty to work for the establishment of peace in the world
and to show an example to others by following their Master's advice: 'All tremble
at punishment, all fear death; comparing others with oneself, one should neither
kill nor cause to kill.'(Dhammapada 129)
Peace is always obtainable. But the
way to peace is not only through prayers and rituals. Peace is the result of man's
harmony with his fellow beings and with his environment. The peace that we try
to introduce by force is not a lasting peace. It is an interval in between the
conflict of selfish desire and worldly conditions.
Peace cannot exits on this
earth without the practice of tolerance. To be tolerant, we must not allow anger
and jealousy to prevail in our mind. The Buddha says,'No enemy can harm one so
much as one's own thoughts of craving, hate and jealousy.'(Dhammapada 42)
Buddhism
is a religion of tolerance because it preaches a life of self-restraint. Buddhism
teaches a life based not on rules but on principles. Buddhism has never persecuted
or maltreated those whose beliefs are different. The Teaching is such that it
is not necessary for anyone to label himself as a Buddhist to practise the Noble
Principles of this religion.
The world is like a mirror and if you look at
the mirror with a smiling face, you can see your own, beautiful smiling face.
On the other hand, if you look at it with a long face, you will invariably see
ugliness. Similarly, if you treat the world kindly the worldly will also certainly
treat you kindly. Learn to be peaceful with yourself and the world will also be
peaceful with you.
Man's mind is given to so much self-deceit that he does
not want to admit his own weakness. He will try to find some excuse to justify
his action and to create an illusion that he is blameless. If a man really wants
to be free, he must have the courage to admit his own weakness. The Buddha says:--
'Easily seen are other'sfaults; hard indeed it is to see one'sown faults.'
Can We Justify War?
The
difference between a dog fight and a war or between two groups of people is only
in its organization.
The history of mankind is a continuous manifestation
of man's greed, hatred, pride, jealousy, selfishness and delusion. During the
last 3,000 years, men have fought 15,000 major wars. Is it a characteristic of
man? What is his destiny? How can men bring destruction to one another?
Although
men have discovered and invented many important things, they have also made great
advances towards the destruction of their own kind. This is how many human civilizations
have been completely erased from this earth. Modern man has become so sophisticated
in his art and techniques of warfare that it is now possible for him to turn the
whole of mankind into ashes within a few seconds. The world has become a storehouse
of military hardware as a result of a little game called 'Military Superiority.'
We are told that the prototype of a nuclear weapon is more powerful than the
atomic bomb which was dropped at Hiroshima Japan in August, 1945 is being planned.
Scientist believe that a few hundred thermonuclear weapons will chart the course
towards universal destruction. Just see what we are doing to our human race! Think
what sort of scientific development it is! See how foolish and selfish man is!
Man should not pander to his aggressive instincts. Man should uphold the ethical
teachings of the religious teachers and display justice with morality to enable
peace to prevail.
Treaties, pacts and peace formulae have been adopted and
millions of words have been spoken by countless world leaders throughout the world
who proclaim that they have found the way to maintain and promote peace on earth.
But for all their efforts, they have not succeeded in removing the threat to man-kind.
The reason is that we have all failed to educate our young to truly understand
and respect the need for selfless service and the danger of selfishness. To guarantee
true peace, we must use every method available to us to educate our young to practise
love, goodwill and tolerance towards others.
The
Buddhist Attitude
A Buddhist should not be the aggressor even in protecting
his religion or anything else. He must try his best to avoid any kind of violent
act. Sometimes he may be forced to go to war by others who do not respect the
concept of the brotherhood of man as taught by the Buddha. He may be called upon
to defend his fellow men from aggression, and as long as he has not renounced
the worldly life, he is duty-bound to join in the struggle for peace and freedom.
Under these circumstances, he cannot be blamed for his action in becoming a soldier
or being involved in defence. However, if everyone were to follow the advice of
the Buddha, there would be no reason for war to take place in this world. It is
the duty of every cultured man to find all possible ways and means to settle disputes
in a peaceful manner, without declaring war to kill his fellow men. The Buddha
did not teach His followers to surrender to any form of evil power, be it man
or supernatural being.
Indeed, with reason and science, man could conquer
nature, and yet man has not yet even secured his own life. Why is it that life
is in danger? While devoted to reason and being ruled by science, man has forgotten
that he has a heart which has been neglected and has been left to wither and be
polluted by passion.
If we cannot secure our own lives, then how can world
peace be possible? To obtain peace, we must train our minds to face facts. We
must be objective and humble. We must realize that no one person, nor one nation
is always wrong. To obtain peace, we must also share the richness of the earth,
not necessarily with equality but at least with equity. There can never be absolute
equality but surely there can be a greater degree of equity.
It is simply
inconceivable that five percent of the world's population should enjoy fifty percent
of the its wealth, or that twenty-five percent of the world should be fairly well-fed
and some overfed, while seventy-five percent of the world is always hungry. Peace
will only come when nations are willing to share and share equitably, the rich
to help the poor and the strong to help the weak, thus creating international
goodwill. Only if and when these conditions are met, can we envision a world with
no excuse for wars.
The madness of the armaments race must stop! We must try
to build schools instead of cruisers, hospitals instead of nuclear weapons. The
amount of money and human lives that various governments waste in the battlefield
should be diverted to build up the economics to elevate the standard of living.
The world cannot have peace until men and nations renounce selfish desires,
give up racial arrogance, and eradicate egoistic lust for possession and power.
Wealth cannot secure happiness. Religion alone can effect the necessary change
of heart and bring about the only real disarmament?that of the mind.
All religions
teach people not to kill; but unfortunately this important precept is conveniently
ignored. Today, with modern armaments, man can kill millions within one second,
that is, more than primitive tribes did in a century.
Very unfortunately some
people in certain countries bring religious labels, slogans and banners into their
battlefields. They do not know that they are disgracing the good name of religion.
'Verily, O monk,' said the Buddha, 'due to sensuous craving, kings fight with
kings, princes with princes, priests with priests, citizens with citizens, the
mother quarrels with the son, the son quarrels with the father, brother with brother,
brother with sister, sister with brother, friend with friend.' (Majjhima Nikaya)
We can happily say that for the last 2,500 years there has never been any
serious discord or conflict created by Buddhists that led to war in the name of
this religion. This is a result of the dynamic character of the concept of tolerance
contained in the Buddha's teaching.
Can a Buddhist Join the Army?
You can
be a soldier of Truth, but not the aggressor.
One day, Sinha, the general
of the army, went to the Buddha and said, 'I am a soldier, O Blessed One. I am
appointed by the King to enforce his laws and to wage his wars. The Buddha teaches
infinite love, kindness and compassion for all sufferers: Does the Buddha permit
the punishment of the criminal? And also, does the Buddha declare that it is wrong
to go to war for the protection of our homes, our wives, our children and our
property? Does the Buddha teach the doctrine of complete self-surrender? Should
I suffer the evil-doer to do with what he pleases and yield submissively to him
who threatens to take by violence what is my own? Does the Buddha maintain that
all strife including warfare waged for a righteous cause should be forbidden?'
The Buddha replied, 'He who deserves punishment must be punished. And he who
is worthy of favor must be favored. Do not do injury to any living being but be
just, filled with love and kindness.' These injunctions are not contradictory
because the person who is punished for his crimes will suffer his injury not through
the ill-will of the judge but through the evil act itself. His own acts have brought
upon him the injury that the executors of the law inflict. When a magistrate punishes,
he must not harbor hatred in his heart. When a murderer is put to death, he should
realize that his punishment is the result of his own act. With his understanding,
he will no longer lament his fate but can console his mind. And the Blessed One
continued, 'The Buddha teaches that all warfare in which man tries to slay his
brothers is lamentable. But he does not teach that those who are involved in war
to maintain peace and order, after having exhausted all means to avoid conflict,
are blameworthy.
'Struggle must exist, for all life is a struggle of some
kind. But make certain that you do not struggle in the interest of self against
truth and justice. He who struggles out of self-interest to make himself great
or powerful or rich or famous, will have no reward. But he who struggles for peace
and truth will have great reward; even his defeat will be deemed a victory.
'If
a person goes to battle even for a righteous cause, then Sinha, he must be prepared
to be slain by his enemies because death is the destiny of warriors. And should
his fate overtake him, he has no reason to complain. But if he is victorious his
success may be deemed great, but no matter how great it is, the wheel of fortune
may turn again and bring his life down into the dust. However, if he moderates
himself and extinguishes all hatred in his heart, if he lifts his down-trodden
adversary up and says to him, 'Come now and make peace and let us be brothers,'
then he will gain a victory that is not a transient success; for the fruits of
that victory will remain forever.
'Great is a successful general, but he who
conquers self is the greater victor. This teaching of conquest of self, Sinha,
is not taught to destroy the lives of others, but to protect them. The person
who has conquered himself is more fit to live, to be successful and to gain victories
than is the person who is the slave of self. The person whose mind is free from
the illusion of self, will stand and not fall in the battle of life. He whose
intentions are righteousness and justice, will meet with no failure. He will be
successful in his enterprise and his success will endure. He who harbors love
of truth in his heart will live and not suffer, for he has drunk the water of
immortality. So struggle courageously and wisely. Then you can be a soldier of
Truth.'
There is no justice in war or violence. When we declare war, we justify
it, when others declare war, we say, it is unjust. Then who can justify war? Man
should not follow the law of the jungle to overcome human problems.
Mercy
Killing
Mercy and Killing can
never go together.
According to Buddhism mercy killing cannot be justified.
Mercy and killing can never go together. Some people kill their pets on the grounds
that they do not like to see the pets suffer. However, if mercy killing is the
correct method to be practised on pets and other animals, then why are people
so reluctant to do the same to their beloved ones?
When some people see their
dogs or cats suffer from some skin disease, they arrange to kill those poor animals.
They call this action, mercy killing. Actually it is not that they have mercy
towards those animals, but they kill them for their own precaution and to get
rid of an awful sight. And even if they do have real mercy towards a suffering
animal, they still have no right to take away its life. No matter how sincere
one may be, mercy killing, is not the correct approach. The consequences of this
killing, however, are different from killing with hatred towards the animal. Buddhists
have no grounds to say that any kind of killing is justified.
Some people
try to justify mercy killing with the misconception that if the motive or reason
is good, then the act itself is good. They then claim that by killing their pet,
they have the intention to relieve the unhappy animal from its suffering and so
the action is good. No doubt their original intention or motive is good. But the
evil act of killing which occurs through a later thought, will certainly bring
about unwholesome results.
Keeping away from mercy killing can become a nuisance
to many. Nevertheless, the Buddhist religion cannot justify mercy killing as completely
free from bad reaction. However, to kill out of necessity and without any anger
or hatred has less bad reaction than to kill out of intense anger or jealousy.
On the other hand, a being (man or animal) may suffer owing to his bad kamma.
If By mercy killing, we prevent the working out of one's bad kamma,the debt will
have to be paid in another existence. As Buddhists, all that we can do is to help
to reduce the pain of suffering in others.
Killing
for Self Protection
The Buddha has advised everyone to abstain from killing.
If everybody accepts this advice, human beings would not kill each other. In the
case where a person's life is threatened, the Buddha says even then it is not
advisable to kill out of self-protection. The weapon for self-protection is loving-kindness.
One who practises this kindness very seldom comes across such misfortune. However,
man loves his life so much that he is not prepared to surrender himself to others;
in actual practice, most people would struggle for self-protection. It is natural
and every living being struggles and kills others for self-protection but kammic
effect depends on their mental attitude. During the struggle to protect himself,
if he happens to kill his opponent although he has no intention to kill, then
he is not responsible for that action. On the other hand, if he kills another
person under any circumstances with the intention to kill, then he is not free
from the kammic reaction; he has to face the consequences. We must remember that
killing is killing; when we disapprove of it, we call it 'murder'. When we punish
man for murdering, we call it 'capital punishment'. If our own soldiers are killed
by an 'enemy' we call it 'slaughter'. However, if we approve a killing, we call
it 'war'. But if we remove the emotional content from these words, we can understand
that killing is killing.
In recent years many scientists and some religionists
have used the expressions like 'humane killing', 'mercy killing', 'gentle killing'
and 'painless killing' to justify the ending of a life. They argue that if the
victim feels no pain, if the knife is sharp, killing is justified. Buddhism can
never accept these arguments because it is not how the killing occurs that is
important, but the fact that a life of one being is terminated by another. No
one has any right to do that for whatever reason.
Part
Six
This World And Other Worlds
Chapter 16
Realms of Existence
The Origin of the World
'There is no reason to suppose that the world
had a beginning at all. The idea that things must have a beginning is really due
to the poverty of our thoughts.'(Bertrand Russell)
There are three schools
of thought regarding the origin of the world. The first school of thought claims
that this world came into existence by nature and that nature is not an intelligent
force. However, nature works no its own accord and goes on changing.
The second
school of thought says that the world was created by an almighty God who is responsible
for everything.
The third school of thought says that the beginning of this
world and of life is inconceivable since they have neither beginning nor end.
Buddhism is in accordance with this third school of thought. Bertrand Russell
supports this school of thought by saying, 'There is no reason to suppose that
the world had a beginning at all. The idea that things must have a beginning is
really due to the poverty of our thoughts.'
Modern science says that some
millions of years ago, the newly cooled earth was lifeless and that life originated
in the ocean. Buddhism never claimed that the world, sun, moon, stars, wind, water,
days and nights were created by a powerful god or by a Buddha. Buddhists believe
that the world was not created once upon a time, but that the world has been created
millions of times every second and will continue to do so by itself and will break
away by itself. According to Buddhism, world systems always appear and disappear
in the universe.
H.G. Wells, in A Short History of the World,says 'It is universally
recognized that the universe in which we live, has to all appearance, existed
for an enormous period of time and possibly for endless time. But that the universe
in which we live, has existed only for six or seven thousand years may be regarded
as an altogether exploded idea. No life seems to have happened suddenly upon earth.'
The efforts made by many religions to explain the beginning and the end of
the universe are indeed ill-conceived. The position of religions which propound
the view that the universe was created by god in an exactly fixed year, has become
a difficult one to maintain in the light of modern and scientific knowledge.
Today
scientists, historians, astronomers, biologists, botanists, anthropologists and
great thinkers have all contributed vast new knowledge about the origin of the
world. This latest discovery and knowledge is not at all contradictory to the
Teachings of the Buddha. Bertrand Russell again says that he respects the Buddha
for not making false statements like others who committed themselves regarding
the origin of the world.
The speculative explanations of the origin of the
universe that are presented by various religions are not acceptable to the modern
scientists and intellectuals. Even the commentaries of the Buddhist Scriptures,
written by certain Buddhist writers, cannot be challenged by scientific thinking
in regard to this question. The Buddha did not waste His time on this issue. The
reason for His silence was that this issue has no religious value for gaining
spiritual wisdom. The explanation of the origin of the universe is not the concern
of religion. Such theorizing is not necessary for living a righteous way of life
and for shaping our future life. However, if one insists on studying this subject,
then one must investigate the sciences, astronomy, geology, biology and anthropology.
These sciences can offer more reliable and tested information on this subject
than can be supplied by any religion. The purpose of a religion is to cultivate
the life here in this world and hereafter until liberation is gained.
In the
eyes of the Buddha, the world is nothing but Samsara--the cycle of repeated births
and deaths. To Him, the beginning of the world and the end of the world is within
this Samsara. Since elements and energies are relative and inter-dependent, it
is meaningless to single out anything as the beginning. Whatever speculation we
make regarding the origin of the world, there is no absolute truth in our notion.
'Infinite is the sky, infinite is the number of beings,
Infinite are the
worlds in the vast universe,
Infinite in wisdom the Buddha teaches these,
Infinite are the virtues of Him who teaches these.'
(Sri Ramachandra)
One day a man called Malunkyaputta approached the Master and demanded that
He explain the origin of the Universe to him. He even threatened to cease to be
His follow if the Buddha's answer was not satisfactory. The Buddha calmly retorted
that it was of no consequence to Him whether or not Malunkyaputta followed Him,
because the Truth did not need anyone's support. Then the Buddha said that He
would not go into a discussion of the origin of the Universe. To Him, gaining
knowledge about such matters was a waste of time because a man's task was to liberate
himself from the present, not the past or the future. To illustrate this, the
Enlightened One related the parable of a man who was shot by a poisoned arrow.
This foolish man refused to have the arrow removed until he found out all about
the person who shot the arrow. By the time his attendants discovered these unnecessary
details, the man was dead. Similarly, our immediate task is to attain Nibbana,
not to worry about our beginnings.
Other World Systems
In the light
of modern, scientific discoveries, we can appreciate the limitations of the human
world and the hypothesis that other world systems might exist in other parts of
the universe.
On certain occasions, the Buddha has commented on the nature
and composition of the universe. According to the Buddha, there are some other
forms of life existing in other parts of the universe. The Buddha has mentioned
that there are thirty-one planes of existence within the universes. They are:
4 States of unhappiness or sub human realms: (life in hells, animal life,
ghost-worlds and demon-worlds)
1 Human world.
6 Develokas or heavenly realms.
16
Rupalokas or Realms of Fine-Material Forms.
4 Arupalokas or Formless Realms.
The
existence of these other-world systems is yet to be confirmed by modern science.
However, modern scientists are now working with the hypothesis that there is a
possibility of other forms of life existing on other planets. As a result of today's
rapid scientific progress, we may soon find some living beings on other planets
in the remotest parts of the galaxy system. Perhaps, we will find them subject
to the same laws as ourselves. They might be physically quite different in both
appearance, elements and chemical composition and exist in different dimensions.
They might be far superior to us or they might be far inferior.
Why should
the planet earth be the only planet to contain life forms? Earth is a tiny speck
in a huge universe. Sir James Jeans, the distinguished astrophysicist, estimates
the whole universe to be about one thousand million times as big as the area of
space that is visible through the telescope. In his book, The Mysterious Universe,he
states that the total number of universes is probably something like the total
number of grains of sand on all the sea shores of the world. In such a universe,
the planet Earth is only from the sun which takes a seventh of a second to reach
the earth, takes probably something like 100,000 million years to travel across
the universe! Such is the vastness of the cosmos. When we consider the vastness
of the many universes making up what is popularly known as 'outer space', the
hypothesis that other-world systems might exist is scientifically feasible.
In
the light of modern scientific discoveries, we can appreciate the limitations
of the human world. Today, science has demonstrated that our human world exists
within the limitations of the vibrational frequencies that can be received by
our sense organs. And science has also shown us that there are other vibrational
frequencies which are above or below our range of reception. With the discovery
of radio waves, X-rays, TV waves, and micro waves, we can appreciate the extremely
limited vision that is imposed on us by our sense organs. We peep out at the universe
through the 'crack' allowed by our sense organs, just as a little child peeps
out through the crack in the door. This awareness of our limited perception demonstrates
to us the possibility that other world systems may exist that are separate from
ours or that interpenetrate with ours.
As to the nature of the universe, the
Buddha said that the beginning and ending of the universe is inconceivable. Buddhists
do not believe that the world will suddenly end in complete and utter destruction.
There is no such thing as complete destruction of the whole universe at once.
When a certain section of the universe disappears, another section remains. When
the other section disappears, another section reappears or evolves out of the
dispersed matters of the previous universe. This is formed by the accumulation
of molecules, basic elements, gas and numerous energies, a combination supported
by cosmic impulsion and gravity. Then some other new world systems appear and
exist for sometime. This is the nature of the cosmic energies. This is why the
Buddha says that the beginning and the end of the universe is inconceivable.
It
was only on certain, special occasions, that the Buddha commented on the nature
and composition of the universe. When he spoke, He had to address Himself to the
understanding capacity of the inquirer. The Buddha was not interested in this
kind of metaphysical speculation that did not lead to the higher spiritual development.
Buddhists do not share the view held by some people that the world will be
destroyed by a god, when there are more non-believers and more corruptions taking
place amongst the human beings. With regard to this belief people can ask, instead
of destroying with his power, why can't this god used the same power to influence
people to become believers and to wipe out al immoral practices from men's mind?
Whether the god destroys or not, it is natural that one day there will be an end
to everything that comes into existence. However, in the language of the Buddha,
the world is nothing more than the combination, existence, disappearance, and
recombination of mind and matter(nama-rupa).
In the final analysis, the Teaching
of the Buddha goes beyond the discoveries of modern science however startling
or impressive they may be. In science, the knowledge of the universe is to enable
man to master it for his material comfort and personal safety. But the Buddha
teaches that no amount of factual knowledge will ultimately free man from the
pain of existence. He must strive alone and diligently until he arrives at a true
understanding of his own nature and of the changeable nature of the cosmos. To
be truly free a man must seek to tame his min, to destroy his craving for sensual
pleasure. When a man truly understands that the universe he is trying to conquer
is impermanent, he will see himself as Don Quixote fighting windmills. With this
Right View of himself he will spend his time and energy conquering his mind and
destroying his illusion of self without wasting his effort on unimportant and
unnecessary issues.
The Buddhist Concept of Heaven and Hell
The
wise man makes his own heaven while the foolish man creates his own hell here
and hereafter.
The Buddhist concept of heaven and hell is entirely different
from that in other religions. Buddhists do not accept that these places are eternal.
It is unreasonable to condemn a man to eternal hell for his human weakness but
quite reasonable to give him every chance to develop himself. From the Buddhist
point of view, those who go to hell can work themselves upward by making use of
the merit that they had acquired previously. There are no locks on the gates of
hell. Hell is a temporary place and there is no reason for those beings to suffer
there forever.
The Buddha's Teaching shows us that there are heavens and hells
not only beyond this world, but in this very world itself. Thus the Buddhist conception
of heaven and hell is very reasonable. For instance, the Buddha once said, 'When
the average ignorant person makes an assertion to the effect that there is a Hell
(patala) under the ocean he is making a statement which is false and without basis.
The word 'Hell' is a term for painful sensations. 'The idea of one particular
ready-made place or a place created by god as heaven and hell is not acceptable
to the Buddhist concept.
The fire of hell in this world is hotter than that
of the hell in the world-beyond. There is no fire equal to anger, lust or greed
and ignorance. According to the Buddha, we are burning from eleven kinds of physical
pain and mental agony: lust, hatred, illusion sickness, decay, death, worry, lamentation,
pain(physical and mental), melancholy and grief. People can burn the entire world
with some of these fires of mental discord. From a Buddhist point of view, the
easiest way to define hell and heaven is that where ever there is more suffering,
either in this world or any other plane, that place is a hell to those who suffer.
And where there is more pleasure or happiness, either in this world or any other
worldly existence, that place is a heaven to those who enjoy their worldly life
in that particular place. However, as the human realm is a mixture of both pain
and happiness, human beings experience both pain and happiness and will be able
to realize the real nature of life. But in many other planes of existence inhabitants
have less chance for this realization. In certain places there is more suffering
than pleasure while in some other places there is more pleasure than suffering.
Buddhists believe that after death rebirth can take place in any one of a
number of possible existences. This future existence is conditioned by the last
thought-moment a person experiences at the point of death. This last thought which
determines the next existence results from the past actions of a man either in
this life or before that. Hence, if the predominant thought reflects meritorious
action, then he will find his future existence in a happy state. But that state
is temporary and when it is exhausted a new life must begin all over again, determined
by another dominating 'kammic' energy. This repetitious process goes on endlessly
unless one arrives at 'Right View' and makes a firm resolve to follow the Noble
Path which produces the ultimate happiness of Nibbana.
Heaven is a temporary
place where those who have done good deeds experience more sensual pleasures for
a longer period. Hell is another temporary place where those evil doers experience
more physical and mental suffering. It is not justifiable to believe that such
places are permanent. There is no god behind the scene of heaven and hell. Each
and every person experiences according to his good and bad kamma. Buddhist never
try to introduce Buddhism by frightening people through hell-fire or enticing
people by pointing to paradise. Their main idea is character building and mental
training. Buddhists can practise their religion without aiming at heaven or without
developing fear of hell.
Belief in Deities (Devas)
Buddhists
do not deny the existence of various gods or deities.
Devas are more fortunate
than human beings as far as sensual pleasures are concerned. They also possess
certain powers which human beings usually lack. However, the powers of these deities
are limited because they are also transitory beings. They exist in happy abodes
and enjoy their life for a longer period than human beings do. When they have
exhausted all the good kamma, that they have gathered during previous birth, these
deities pass away and are reborn somewhere else according to their good and bad
kamma. According to the Buddha, human beings have more opportunities to accrue
merits to be born in a better condition, and the deities have less chances in
this respect.
Buddhist do not attribute any specific importance to such gods.
They do not regard the deities as a support for the moral development or as a
support for the attainment of salvation of Nibbana. Whether they are great or
small, both human beings and deities are perishable and subject to rebirth.
It
is a common belief amongst the Buddhist public that such deities can be influenced
to grant their favours by transferring merits to them whenever meritorious deeds
are performed. This belief is based on the Buddha's injunction to the deities
to protect those human beings who lead a religious way of life. This is the reason
why Buddhists transfer the merits to such deities or remember them whenever they
do some meritorious deeds. However, making of offerings to and worshipping such
deities are not encouraged, although some Buddhist customs center around such
activities. When people are in great difficulties, they naturally turn to the
deities to express their grievances in a place of worship. By doing this, they
gain some relief and consolation; in their hearts, they feel much better. However,
to an intellectual who has strong will power, sound education and understanding,
such beliefs and actions need not be resorted to. There is definitely no Teaching
in Buddhism to the effect that Buddhists can attain Nibbana by praying to any
deity. Buddhists believe that 'purity and impurity depend on oneself. No one from
outside can purify another.' (Dhammapada 165)
Buddhahoodand Nibbanacan be
attained without any help from an external source. Therefore, Buddhists can practise
their religion with or without the deities.
Spirit World
There are visible and
invisible beings or spirits in the same way as there are visible and invisible
lights.
Buddhism does not deny the existence of good and evil spirits. There
are visible and invisible beings or spirits in the same way as there are visible
and invisible lights. We need special instruments to see the invisible light and
we need a special sense to see the invisible beings. One cannot deny the existence
of such spirits just because one is unable to see them with one's naked eyes.
Theses spirits are also subject to birth and death. They are not going to stay
permanently in the spirit form. They too exist in the same world where we live.
A genuine Buddhist is one who moulds his life according to moral causation
discovered by the Buddha. He should not be concerned with the worshipping of these
gods and spirits. However, this kind of worshipping is of some interest and fascination
to the multitude and has naturally brought some Buddhists into contact with these
activities.
Regarding protection from evil spirits, goodness is a shield against
evil. Goodness is a wall through which evil cannot penetrate unless a person opens
the door to an evil influence. Even though a person leads a truly virtuous and
holy life and has a good shield of moral and noble living that person can still
lower his shield of protection by believing in the power of evil that would do
harm to him.
The Buddha has never advised His followers to worship such spirits
and to be frightened of them. The Buddhist attitude towards them is to transfer
merits and to radiate loving-kindness to them. Buddhists do not harm them. On
the other hand, if man is religious, virtuous and pure in mind, and if he is also
intelligent and possesses strong will-power and understanding capacity, then such
a person could be deemed to be much stronger than spirits. The evil spirits would
keep away from him, the good spirits would protect him.
The Significance of Transference of Merits to the Departed
If
you really want to honor and help your departed ones, then do some meritorious
deeds in their name and transfer the merits to them.
According to Buddhism,
good deeds or 'acts of merit' bring happiness to the doer both in this world and
in the hereafter. Acts of merit are also believed to lead towards the final goal
of everlasting happiness. The acts of merit can be performed through body, speech
or mind. Every good deed produces 'merit' which accumulates to the 'credit' of
the doer. Buddhism also teaches that the acquired merit can be transferred to
others' it can be shared vicariously with others. In other words, the merit is
'reversible' and so can be shared with other persons. The persons who receive
the merit can be either living or departed ones.
The method for transferring
merits is quite simple. First some good deeds are performed. The doer of the good
deeds has merely to wish that the merit he has gained accrues to someone in particular,
or to 'all beings'. This wish can be purely mental or it can accompanied by an
expression of words.
This wish could be made with the beneficiary being aware
of it. When the beneficiary is aware of the act or wish, then a mutual 'rejoicing
in' merit takes place. Here the beneficiary becomes a participant of the original
deed by associating himself with the deed done. If the beneficiary identifies
himself with both the deed and the doer, he can sometimes acquire even greater
merit than the original doer, either because his elation is greater or because
his appreciation of the value of the deed is based on his understanding of Dhamma
and, hence, more meritorious, Buddhist texts contain several stories of such instances.
The 'joy of transference of merits' can also take place with or without the
knowledge of the doer of the meritorious act. All that is necessary is for the
beneficiary to feel gladness in his heart when he becomes aware of the good deed.
If he wishes, he can express his joy by saying 'sadhu' which means 'well done'.
What he is doing is creating a kind of mental or verbal applause. In order to
share the good deed done by another, what is important is that there must be actual
approval of the deed and joy arising in the beneficiary's heart.
Even if he
so desires, the doer of a good deed cannot prevent another's 'rejoicing in the
merit' because he has no power over another's thoughts. According to the Buddha,
in all actions, thought is what really matters. Transference is primarily an act
of the mind.
To transfer merit does not mean that a person is deprived of
the merit had originally acquired by his good deed. On the contrary, the very
act of 'transference' is a good deed in itself and hence enhances the merit already
earned.
Highest Gift to the
Departed
The Buddha says that the greatest gift one can confer on one's dead
ancestors is to perform 'acts of merit' and to transfer these merits so acquired.
He also says that those who give also receive the fruits of their deeds. The Buddha
encouraged those who did good deeds such as offering alms to holy men, to transfer
the merits which they received to their departed ones. Alms should be given in
the name of the departed by recalling to mind such things as, 'When he was alive,
he gave me this wealth; he did this for me; he was my relative, my companion,
etc. (Tirokuddha Sutta_Khuddakapatha). There is no use weeping, feeling sorry,
lamenting and bewailing; such attitudes are of no consequence to the departed
ones.
Transferring merits to the departed is based on the popular belief that
on a person's death, his 'merits' and 'demerits' are weighed against one another
and his destiny determined, his actions determined whether he is to be reborn
in a sphere of happiness or a realm of woe. The belief is that the departed one
might have gone to the world of the departed spirits. The beings in these lower
forms of existence cannot generate fresh merits, and have to live on with the
merits which are earned from this world.
Those who did not harm others and
who performed many good deeds during their life time, will certainly have the
chance to be reborn in a happy place. Such persons do not required the help of
living relatives. However, those who have no chance to be reborn in a happy abode
are always waiting to receive merits from their living relatives to offset their
deficiency and to enable them to be born in a happy abode.
Those who are reborn
in an unfortunate spirit form could be released from their suffering condition
through the transferring of merits to them by friends and relatives who do some
meritorious deeds.
This injunction of the Buddha to transfer merits to departed
ones is the counterpart of the Hindu custom which has come down through the ages.
Various ceremonies are performed so that the spirits of dead ancestors might live
in peace. This custom has been a tremendous influence on the social life of certain
Buddhist countries. The dead are always remembered when any good deed is done,
and more on occasions connected with their lives, such as their birth or death
anniversaries. On such occasions, there is a ritual which is generally practised.
The transferor pours water from a jug or other similar vessel into a receptacle,
while repeating a Pali formula which is translated as follows:
As river, when
full must flow
and reach and fill the distant main,
So indeed what is given
here will
reach and bless the spirits there.
As water poured on mountain
top must
soon descend and fill the plain
So indeed what is given here will
reach
and bless the spirits there.
(Nidhikanda Sutta in Khuddakapatha)
The
origin and the significance of transference of merit is open to scholarly debate.
Although this ancient custom still exists today in many Buddhists countries, very
few Buddhists who follow this ancient custom have understood the meaning of transference
of merits and the proper way to do that.
Some people are simply wasting time
and money on meaningless ceremonies and performances in memory of departed ones.
These people do not realize that it is impossible to help the departed ones simply
by building big graveyards, tombs, paper-houses and other paraphernalia Neither
is it possible to help the departed by burning joss-sticks, joss-paper, etc.;
nor is it possible to help the departed by slaughtering animals and offering them
along with other kinds of food. Also one should not waste by burning things used
by the departed ones on the assumption that the deceased persons would somehow
benefit by the act, when such articles can in fact be distributed among the needy.
The only way to help the departed ones is to do some meritorious deeds in
a religious way in memory of them. The meritorious deeds include such acts as
giving alms to others, building schools, temples, orphanages, libraries, hospitals,
printing religious books for free distribution and similar charitable deeds.
The
followers of the Buddha should act wisely and should not follow anything blindly.
While others pray to god for the departed ones, Buddhists radiate their loving-kindness
directly to them. By doing meritorious deeds, they can transfer the merits to
their beloved ones for their well-being. This is the best way of remembering and
giving real honor to and perpetuating the names of the departed ones. In their
state of happiness, the departed ones will reciprocate their blessings on their
living relatives. It is, therefore, the duty of relatives to remember their departed
ones by transferring merits and by radiating loving-kindness directly to them.
Chapter 17
Divination
and Dreams
Astrology and Astronomy
'I
believe in astrology but not astrologers.'
From the very beginning of time
man has been fascinated by the stars and he has always tried to find some links
between them and his own destiny. His observation of the stars and their movements
gave rise to two very important areas of study, namely, Astronomy and Astrology.
Astronomy can be considered a pure science which is concerned with the measurements
of distances, the evolution and destruction of stars, their movements, and so
on. Of course all these calculations are always made in relation to planet earth
and how these interplanetary movements affect mankind on a physical level. Modern
astronomy seeks to find answers to the still unanswered questions regarding the
origin of man and the final, possible end of his existence as a member of the
human race. It is a fascinating area of study and our new knowledge of the universe
and the galaxies has put much pressure on many religions to evaluate their age-old
postulations regarding the creator and the creation of life.
Buddhism does
not face any dilemma, simply because the Buddha did not encourage His followers
to speculate on things beyond their comprehension. However, He has made many allusions
which in the light of our new knowledge gained through science, shows us that
the Buddha was very much aware of the true nature of the Universe, that it was
never created in one glorious moment, that the earth is merely a tiny, even unimportant
speck in all of space, that there is constant creation and destruction, and that
everything is in constant motion.
Astrology, however, is a completely different
area of study altogether. Ever since early man began to think, he was deeply concerned
about his relationship with the universe. When human societies became involved
in agricultural activities man progressed from hunting as a livelihood and began
to notice a link between the movement of the sun through the years and his own
activities of planting, harvesting, and similar projects. As he became more sophisticated
he was able to predict the movement of the sun and he invented time measurement,
dividing into years, months, days, hours, minutes and seconds.
He associated
this knowledge with his existence whereby he felt that there was a relationship
between his own life cycle and the movement of the planets. That gave rise to
the Zodiac--A study of these movements in relation to a human being's personal
life is called a horoscope.
The study of astrology involves a great understanding
of human nature, an ability to assess planetary movements precisely, together
with an insight into the seemingly unexplainable phenomena in the universe. There
have been many brilliant astrologers in the past and some exist even today. Unfortunately
there are an even larger number of charlatans who give astrology a bad name. They
hood-wink people by predicting seemingly true events about their future. They
make large sums of money by exploiting the ignorance and fear of the gullible.
As a result, for a long time scientists scoffed at astrology and did not depend
on it. However their hostile attitude is not really justifiable. The main purpose
of reading a horoscope should be to give one an insight into one's own character,
in the same way that an X-ray photograph can show the physical make-up of a man.
Statistics have shown that the influence of the sun in the signs of the Zodiac
accounts for the birth of unusual people during certain months. Certain crimes
have been found to correspond with zodiac signs in which the sun is moving during
certain months of the year.
Thus an understanding of this relationship will
help a man to plot his life more meaningfully in harmony with his innate tendencies,
so that there is less friction as he goes through life.
A new-born baby is
like a seed. It contains within itself all the ingredients which will make it
a similar, yet completely different individual from all its fellow human beings.
How its potential is developed depends, like the seed, on the kind of nurture
it receives. The nature of a man is born within him, but his own free will determines
whether he will make really good use of his talents and abilities. Whether he
will overcome his potential for vice or weakness depends on how he is trained
in his youth. If we recognize our nature--our tendency towards laziness, irritability,
worries, frustrations, wickedness, cunnings, jealousy--we can take positive steps
to overcome them. The first step in solving problems is to recognize them for
what they are.
Astrological interpretations indicate our inclinations and
tendencies. Once pointed out, we must take the necessary steps to chart our lives
in a manner that will make us useful citizens of the world. Even a person with
criminal tendencies can become a saint, if he recognizes his nature and takes
steps to lead a good life.
A horoscope is a chart drawn to show the karmic
force a man carries, calculated from the time of his birth. The force determines
the time of birth and knowing this time, a skillful astrologer can accurately
chart a man's destiny within a given life-span.
Everybody knows that the earth
takes approximately one year to move around the sun. This movement, viewed from
the earth, places the sun in various zodiacal areas during the year. A person
is born (not accidentally, but as a result of karmic influence)when the sun is
on transit in one of the twelve Zodiacal signs.
Through the horoscope you
can determined certain times in your life when you have to slow down, or push
yourself to great levels of creativity, or when you have to watch your activities
and health.
Buddhist Attitude Towards
Astrology
The question most people ask is whether Buddhism accepts or rejects
astrology. Strictly speaking, the Buddha did not make any direct pronouncement
on this subject because as in many other cases, He stated that discussion on matters
such as these do not pertain to spiritual development. Buddhism, unlike some other
religions, does not condemn astrology and people are free to used the knowledge
they can get from it to make their lives more meaningful. However, if we study
the Buddha's teaching carefully, we will come to accept that a proper and intelligent
understanding of astrology can be a useful tool. There is a direct link between
the life of an individual human being and the vast workings of the cosmos. Modern
science is in accordance with the teachings of Buddhism. We know for example that
there is a close link between the movement of the moon and our own behavior. This
is seen especially among mentally disturbed and abnormally violent people. It
is also true that certain sicknesses like asthma and bronchitis are aggravated
when the moon waxes. There is, therefore, sufficient basis for us to believe that
other planets can also influence our lives.
Buddhism accepts that there is
an immense cosmic energy which pulsates through every living things, including
plants. This energy interacts with the karmic energy which an individual generates
and determines the course that a life will take. The birth of an individual is
not the first creation of a life but the continuation of one that had always existed
and will continue to exist so long as the karmic energy is not quelled through
final liberation in the unconditioned state. Now, for a life to manifest itself
in a new existence, certain factors, namely seasons, germinal order and nature
must be fulfilled. These are supported by mental energy and karmic energy and
all these elements are in constant interaction and interdependent with each other
resulting in constant changes to a human being's life.
According astrologers,
the time at which a person is born is predetermined by the cosmic energy and the
karmic energy. Hence, it can be concluded that life is not merely accidental:
it is the result of the interaction between an individual's karma and the universal
energy force. The course of a human life is predetermined, caused partly by a
being's own actions in the past and the energies that activate the cosmos. Once
started, a life is controlled by the interaction between these two forces even
to the moment at which a birth takes place. A skillful astrologer then, as one
who understands cosmic as well as karmic influence, can chart the course of one's
life, based on the moment of the person's birth.
While we are in one sense
at the mercy of these forces, the Buddha has pointed out a way through which we
can escape its influence. All karmic energies are stored in the subconscious mind
formally described as mental purifies and impurities. Since karmic forces influence
one's destiny, a person can develop his mind and negate certain evil influences
caused by previous bad kamma. A person can also 'purify' his mind and rid himself
of all karmic energies and thus prevent rebirth. When there is no rebirth, there
is no potential life and there will consequently be no 'future' existence which
can be predicated or charted. At such a stage of spiritual and mental development
, one will have transcended the need to know about his life because most imperfections
and unsatisfactoriness would have been removed. A highly developed human being
will have no need for a horoscope.
Since the beginning of the 20th century,
psychologists and psychiatrists have come to recognize that there is much more
to the human mind than the hard core materialists have been ready to accept. There
is more to the world than can be seen and touched. The famous Swiss psychologist,
Carl Jung, used to cast the horoscopes of his patients. On one occasion when he
made an astrological analysis of about 500 marriages, he discovered that the findings
of Ptolemy, on which modern Western astrology is based, were still valid, that
favorable aspects between the sun and the moon of the different partners did produce
happy marriage.
The well-known French psychologist, Michel Gauguelin, who
originally held a negative view of astrology, made a survey of about 20,000 horoscopical
analyses and found to his surprise that the characteristics of the persons studied
coincided with characterization produced by modern psychological methods.
The
planting of certain flowers, trees and vegetables at different times of a year
will produce differences in strength or appearance of the plants. So there is
no reason to doubt that people born in certain times of the year will have different
characteristics from people born at other times. By knowing his weaknesses, failures
and short-comings, a man can do his best to overcome them and make himself a better
and more useful person to society. It will also help him a great deal to get rid
of unhappiness and disappointments. (Going away from the country where a person
is born for example, can sometimes help one avoid the influence of the stars.).
Shakespeare says: 'The fault is not in our stars but in ourselves". A
well known astrologer has said: 'The stars impel; they do not compel'. St. Thomas
Aquinas says: 'The planets influence the more elemental part of man than passions',
but through his intellect man can arrange his life in harmony with the planets,
and also cultivate his inherent talents and manipulate them for his betterment.
Astrology cannot automatically solve all your problems. You must do that yourself.
Just like a doctor who can diagnose the nature of diseases, an astrologer can
only show certain aspects of your life and character. After that it is left to
you to adjust your way of life. Of course, the task will be made easier, knowing
what it is you are up against. Some people are too dependent on astrology. They
run to the astrologer everytime something happens or if they have a dream. Remember,
even today astrology is very much an imperfect science and even the best astrologers
can make serious mistakes. Use astrology intelligently, just as you would use
any tool which would make your life more comfortable and more enjoyable. Above
all, beware of fake astrologer who are out to cheat you by telling you not the
truth, but what you want to hear.
Do not expect good luck to come to you or
be handed to you easily without any effort on your part. If you want to reap the
harvest, you must sow the seed and it must be the right seed. Remember, 'Opportunity
knocks at the door, but never break the lock to gain entrance.'
Fortune-Telling and Charms
Hard work is the
luckiest star.
Although Buddhism does not refute belief in deities, spirits,
astrology and fortune-telling, the Buddha's advice was that people should not
be slaves to any of those forces. A good Buddhist can overcome all his difficulties
if he knows how to make use of his intelligence and will-power. The above mentioned
beliefs have no spiritual significance or value. Man must overcome all his problems
and difficulties by his own efforts and not through the medium of deities, spirits,
astrology or fortune-telling. In one of the Buddhist Jataka stories, the Bodhisatta
said:
'The fool may watch for lucky days,
Yet luck he shall always miss,
The
luck itself is luck's own star,
What can mere stars achieve?
He believed
that hard work was the luckiest star and one should not waste time by consulting
stars and lucky days in order to achieve success. To do your best to help yourself
is better than to rely solely on the stars or external sources.
Although some
Buddhists practise fortune-telling and dispense some forms of charms or amulets
under the guise of religion, the Buddha at no time encouraged anyone to practise
such things. Like fortune-telling, charms come under the category of superstition,
and have no religious value. Yet there are many people today who, because of sickness
and misfortunes attribute the cause of their illness and ill-luck to the power
of charms. When the cause of certain sickness and misfortunes cannot be ascertained
or traced, many people tend to believe that their problems are due to charms or
some other external causes. They have forgotten that they are now living in the
twentieth century. This is the modern age of scientific development and achievement.
Our leading scientists have thrown aside many superstitious beliefs and they have
even placed men on the moon!
All sicknesses owe their origin to either mental
or physical causes. In Shakespeare, Macbeth asked a doctor if there was any medicine
that could cure his wife and the doctor replied: 'More needs she the divine than
the physician.' What he meant was that some diseases could only be cured if the
mind was purified. Some severe mental disorders manifest themselves in a physical
manner--ulcers, stomach aches, and so on.
Of course diseases are purely physical
and can be cured by a competent doctor. And finally, some inexplicable disorders
could be caused by what Buddhist call the ripening of the kammic fruit. This means
we would have to pay for some evil deed that we have committed in a past life.
If we can understand this in the case of some incurable diseases, we can bear
it with greater patience, knowing its real cause.
People who cannot be cured
of their sickness are advised to consult a medical specialist and obtain specialized
attention. If after having gone through a medical check-up, a person still feels
in need of attention, then he may want to seek spiritual guidance from a proper
religious teacher.
Buddhists are strongly advised against falling into the
miserable pit of superstitious beliefs and allowing the mind to be troubled by
unnecessary and unfounded fears. Cultivate a strong will-power by refusing to
believe in the influence of charms.
A short meditation course may also prove
very helpful to clear the mind of unwholesome thoughts. Meditation leads to the
purification of the mind. A purified mind automatically leads to a purified and
healthy body. The Buddha-Dhamma is a soothing balm to get rid of sickness of this
nature.
Consulting Mediums
Consulting
mediums is not a Buddhist practice: it is just a traditional and psychological
belief.
In many countries, people seek the advice and guidance of mediums
to overcome their problems in situations which they consider as beyond their comprehension.
The medium's help is sought in many ways and for various reasons. In time
of sickness when medical help is apparently ineffective, some people may become
desperate and turn anywhere to seek solace. At such times, mediums are often consulted.
Some people also turn to mediums when they are faced with a complex and are unable
to find an acceptable solution. Others consult mediums out of greed in order to
get rich quickly.
Some people believe that when a medium is in a trance, the
spirit of a certain god or deity communicate through the medium and offers advice
or guidance to those seeking help. Others believe that the trance-state is the
work of the subconscious mind which surfaces and takes over the conscious mind.
Consulting mediums is a fairly common practice amongst the public. The Buddhist
attitude towards consulting medium is one of neutrality. It is difficult to verify
whether what the medium conveys is correct or not. The practice of consulting
medium is not a Buddhist practice; it is just a traditional practice.
Consulting
mediums is for worldly material gain; the Teaching of the Buddha is for spiritual
development. However, if people believe what the medium conveys is true, there
is no reason for Buddhists to object to such practices.
If a person really
understands and practices the Teaching of the Buddha, he can realize the nature
of his problems. He can overcome his own problems without consulting any medium.
Dreams and Their Significance
'Life
is nothing but a dream.'
One of man's greatest unsolved problems is the mystery
of dreams. From the very earliest of times man has tried to analyze dreams and
has tried to explain them in prophetic and psychological terms, but while there
has been some measure of success recently, we are probably no nearer the answers
to the baffling question: 'What is a dream?'
The great English Romantic poet
William Wordsworth had a startling concept: that this life we live is merely a
dream and that we will 'awake' to the 'real' reality when we die, when our 'dream'
ends.
'Our birth is but a sleep and forgetting:
The Soul, that rises with
us, our life's star,
Hath had elsewhere its setting,
And cometh from afar.'
A
similar concept is expressed in a charming old Buddhist tale which tells of a
deva who was playing with some other devas. Being tired, he lay down to take a
short nap and passed away. He was reborn as a girl on earth. There she got married,
had a few children and lived to be very old. After her death again she was born
as a deva amongst the same companions who had just finished playing their game.
(This story also illustrates the world is very different from time in another
plane of existence).
What has Buddhism to say about dreams? Just as in every
other culture, Buddhism has had its fair share of people who claimed to be skilled
in interpreting dreams. Such people earn a lot of money exploiting the ignorance
of men and women who believe that every dream has a spiritual or prophetic significance.
According to Buddhist psychology dreams are ideational processes which occur
as activities of the mind. In considering the occurrence of dreams it is relevant
to remember that the process of sleeping can be regarded as falling into five
stages.
drowsiness,
light slumber,
deep slumber,
light slumber and
awakening.
The
significance and the cause of dreams were the subject of discussion in the famous
book 'Milinda Panha' or 'The Questions of King Milinda', in which Ven. Nagasena
has stated that there are six causes of dreams, three of them being organic, wind,
bile and phlegm. The fourth is due to the intervention of supernatural forces,
fifth, revival of past experience and sixth, the influence of future events. It
is categorically stated that dreams occur only in light slumber which is said
to be like the sleep of the monkey. Of the six causes given Ven. Nagasena has
stated positively that the last, namely prophetic dreams are the only important
ones and the others are relatively insignificant.
Dreams are mind-created
phenomena and they are activities of the mind. All human beings dream, although
some people cannot remember. Buddhism teaches that some dreams have psychological
significance. The six causes mentioned earlier can also be classified in the following
manner:
Every single thought that is created is stored in our subconscious
mind and some of them strongly influence the mind according to our anxieties.
When we sleep, some of these thoughts are activated and appear to us as 'pictures'
moving before us. This happens because during sleep, the five senses which constitute
our contact with the outside world, are temporarily arrested. The subconscious
mind then is free to become dominant and to 're-play' thoughts that are stored.
These dreams may be of value to psychiatry but cannot be classified as prophetic.
They are merely the reflections of the mind at rest.
The second type of dream
also has no significance. These are caused by internal and external provocations
which set off a train of 'visual thoughts' which are 'seen' by the mind at rest.
Internal factors are those which disturb the body(e.g. a heavy meal which does
not allow one to have a restful slumber or imbalance and friction between elements
that constitute the body). External provocation is when the mind is disturbed(although
the sleeper may be unaware of it) by natural phenomena like the weather, wind,
cold, rain, leaves rustling, windows rattling etc. The subconscious mind reacts
to these disturbances and creates pictures to 'explain' them away. The mind accommodates
the irritation in a seemingly rational way so that the dreamer can continue to
sleep undisturbed. These dreams too have no importance and need no interpretation.
Then
there are prophetic dreams. These are important. They are seldom experienced and
only when there is an impending event which is of great relevance to the dreamer.
Buddhism teaches that besides the tangible world we can experience, there are
devas who exist on another plane or some spirits who are bound to this earth and
are invisible to us. They could be our relatives or friends who have passed away
and who have been reborn. They maintain their former mental relationships and
attachments to us. When Buddhists transfer merits to devas and departed ones,
they remember them and invite them to share the happiness accrued in the merit.
Thus they develop a mental relationship with their departed ones. The devas in
turn are pleased and they keep a watch over us and indicate something in dreams
when we are facing certain big problems and they try to protect us from harm.
So,
when there is something important that is going to happen in our lives they activate
certain mental energies in our minds which are seen as dreams. These dreams can
warn of impending danger or even prepare us for sudden over-whelming good news.
These messages are given in symbolic terms (much like the negatives of photographs)
and have to be interpreted skillfully and with intelligence. Unfortunately too
many people confuses the first two kinds of dreams with these and end up wasting
valuable time and money consulting fake mediums and dream-interpreters. The Buddha
was aware that this could be exploited for personal gain and He therefore warned
the monks against practising soothsaying, astrology and interpreting dreams in
the name of Buddhism.
Finally, our mind is the4 depository of all kammic energies
accumulated in the past. Sometimes, when a kamma is about to ripen (that is, when
the action we did in a previous life or early part of our life, is going to experience
its reaction)the mind which is at rest during sleep can trigger off a 'picture'
of what is going to happen. Again the impending action has to be of great importance
and must be so strongly charged that the mind 'releases' the extra energy in the
form of a vivid dream. Such dreams occur only very rarely and only to certain
people with a special kind of mental make up. The sign of the effect of certain
kammas also appears in our minds at the last moment when we are going to depart
from this world.
Dreams can occur when two living human beings send strong
mental telepathic messages to each other. When one person has an intense desire
to communicate with another, he concentrates strongly on the message and the person
with whom he wishes to communicate. When the mind is at rest, it is in an ideal
state to receive these messages which are seen as dreams. Usually these dreams
only appear in one intense moment because the human mind is not strong enough
to sustain such messages over a long period of time.
All worldlings are dreamers,
and they see as permanent, what is essentially impermanent. They do not see that
youth ends in old age, beauty in ugliness, health in sickness, and life itself
in death. In this dream-world, what is truly without substance is seen as reality.
Dreaming during sleep is but another dimension of the dream-world. The only ones
who are awake are the Buddhas and Arahats as they have seen reality.
Buddhas
and Arahants never dream. The first three kinds of dream cannot occur in their
minds, because their minds have been permanently 'stilled' and cannot be activated
to dream. The last kind of dream cannot happen to them because they have eradicated
all their craving energy completely, and there is no 'residual' energy of anxiety
or unsatisfied desire to activate the mind to produce dreams. The Buddha is also
known as the Awakened One because His way of relaxing the physical body is not
the way we sleep which results in dreams. Great artists and thinkers, like the
German Goethe, have often said they get some of their best inspiration through
dreams. This could be because when their minds are cut off from the five senses
during sleep, they produce clear thoughts which are creative in the highest degree.
Wordsworth meant the same thing when he said that good poetry results from 'powerful
emotions recollected in tranquillity
Faith Healing
Faith healing--apsychological
approach.
The practice of faith-healing is prevalent in many countries. Many
people are trying to influence the public through emotional persuasion designated
as faith-healing. In order to impress on their patients the efficacy of their
healing powers, some faith-healers use the name of a god or a religious object
to introduce a religious flavor into their faith healing methods. The introduction
of religion into faith-healing is actually a guise or a decoy to beguile the patient
into developing more devotion and enhance the confidence or faith of the patient
in the faith-healer. This healing act, if performed in public is intended to get
converts to a particular religious denomination.
In actual fact, in so far
as faith-healing is concerned, religion is not all that important. There are numerous
cases of faith-healers performing their faith-healing acts without using religion
at all. A case in point is the science of hypnotism, the practice of which involves
no religious aspects at all. Those who associate religion with faith-healing are
in a way engaging in a subtle form of illusion trying to attract converts to their
particular religion by making use of faith healing and describing certain cures
as miraculous acts.
The methods employed by faith healers are to condition
the minds of patients into having a certain mental attitude with the result that
certain favorable psychological and physiological changes invariably take place.
This attracts the condition of the mind, the heart, the consequent blood circulation
and other related organic functions of the body, thus creating a feeling of a
sense of well-being. If sickness is attributed to the condition of the mind, then
the mind can certainly be properly conditioned to assist in eradicating whatever
illness that may occur.
In this context, it is to be noted that the constant
and regular practice of meditation can help to minimize, if not to completely
eradicate, various forms of illnesses. There are many discourses in the Teaching
of the Buddha where it was indicated that various forms of sicknesses were eradicated
through the conditioning of the mind. Thus it is worthwhile to practise meditation
in order to attain mental and physical well-being.
Superstitions and Dogmas
'People ridicule the
superstitions of others, while cherishing their own.'
All ailments have cures
but not superstitions. And if for some reason or other, any superstition crystallizes
into a religion, it easily becomes an almost incurable malady. In the performance
of certain religious functions, even educated people of today forget their human
dignity to accept the most ridiculous, superstitious beliefs.
Superstitious
beliefs and rituals were adopted to decorate a religion in order to attract the
multitude. But after sometime, the creeper which is planted to decorate the shrine
as it were, outgrows and outshines the shrine, with the result that religious
tenets are relegated to the background and superstitious beliefs and rituals become
predominant?the creeper eclipsing the shrine.
Like superstition dogmatic belief
also chokes the healthy growth of religion. Dogmatic belief and intolerance go
hand-in-hand. One is reminded of the Middle Ages with its pitiless inquisitions,
cruel murders, violence, infamy, tortures and burning of innocent beings. One
is also reminded of the barbaric and ruthless crusades. All these events were
stimulated by dogmatic beliefs in religious authority and the intolerance resulting
therefrom.
Before the development of scientific knowledge, ignorant people
had many superstitious beliefs. For example a lot of people believed that the
eclipse of the sun and moon brought bad luck and pestilence. Today we know that
such beliefs are not true. Again some unscrupulous religionists encourage people
to believe in superstitions so that they can make use of their followers for their
own 'benefit'. When people have truly purified their minds of ignorance, they
will see the universe as it really is and they will not suffer from superstition
and dogmatism. This is the 'salvation' that Buddhists aspire to.
It is extremely
difficult for us to break up the emotional feeling that is attached to superstition
or dogmatic belief. Even the light of scientific knowledge is often not strong
enough to cause us to give up the misconceptions. For example, we have noticed
for generations that the earth moves round the sun; but experientially we still
behold the sun rising, moving across the sky, and setting in the evening. We still
have to make an intellectual leap to imagine that we are, in fact, hurtling at
great speed around the sun.
We must understand that the dangers of dogmatism
and superstition go hand-in-hand with religion. The time has come for wise people
to separate religion from dogmatism and superstition. Otherwise, the good name
of religion will be polluted and the number of non-believers will be increased,
as they have already.